Selected quad for the lemma: scripture_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
scripture_n church_n ground_n infallible_a 3,162 5 9.6287 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A71070 An answer to several late treatises, occasioned by a book entituled A discourse concerning the idolatry practised in the Church of Rome, and the hazard of salvation in the communion of it. The first part by Edward Stillingfleet ... Stillingfleet, Edward, 1635-1699. 1673 (1673) Wing S5559; ESTC R564 166,980 378

There are 36 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

no_o such_o thing_n 3._o a_o law_n of_o such_o universal_a concernment_n to_o the_o faith_n and_o peace_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n be_v suppose_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o best_a and_o purest●_n age_n of_o the_o church_n must_v be_v suppose_v agreeable_a thereto_o i._n e._n that_o in_o all_o matter_n of_o difference_n they_o do_v constant_o own_o these_o infallible_a judge_n by_o appeal_n to_o they_o for_o a_o final_a issue_n of_o all_o debate_n and_o rest_v satisfy_v with_o their_o decision_n but_o if_o on_o the_o contrary_a when_o great_a difference_n have_v happen_v in_o and_o near_a the_o first_o time_n no_o such_o authority_n be_v make_v use_n of_o but_o other_o way_n put_v in_o practice_n to_o make_v a_o end_n of_o they_o if_o when_o it_o be_v pretend_v it_o be_v slight_v and_o reject_v nay_o if_o the_o person_n pretend_v it_o be_v proceed_v against_o and_o condemn_v and_o this_o not_o by_o a_o popular_a faction_n but_o by_o just_a and_o legal_a authority_n we_o may_v thence_o conclude_v that_o such_o judge_n have_v arrogate_a that_o power_n to_o themselves_o which_o be_v not_o give_v they_o by_o the_o supreme_a legislator_n these_o thing_n be_v premise_v i_o come_v to_o his_o particular_a argument_n which_o lie_v scattered●up_n and_o down_o but_o to_o give_v they_o the_o great_a strength_n i_o shall_v bring_v they_o near_o together_o and_o they_o be_v draw_v either_o from_o scripture_n or_o tradition_n or_o parity_n of_o reason_n 1._o from_o scripture_n and_o in_o truth_n the_o only_a satisfactory_a argument_n in_o a_o matter_n of_o so_o great_a concernment_n to_o the_o christian_a church_n ought_v only_o to_o be_v draw_v from_o thence_o unless_o we_o will_v suppose_v the_o scripture_n defective_a in_o the_o most_o important_a thing_n for_o this_o be_v plead_v as_o a_o thing_n necessary_a for_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n by_o some_o and_o for_o the_o faith_n of_o christian_n by_o other_o so_o much_o great_a the_o necessity_n of_o it_o be_v so_o much_o clear_a ought_v the_o evidence_n of_o it_o to_o be_v in_o scripture_n suppose_v that_o to_o be_v intend_v to_o reveal_v the_o will_n of_o god_n to_o we_o in_o matter_n of_o the_o great_a necessity_n but_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v by_o our_o adversary_n that_o the_o place_n produce_v by_o they_o for_o a_o constant_a infallibility_n in_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n do_v not_o necessary_o prove_v it_o because_o they_o be_v very_o capable_a of_o be_v understand_v as_o to_o the_o infallibility_n only_o of_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o first_o age_n and_o foundation_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n be_v it_o then_o to_o be_v imagine_v that_o if_o christ_n have_v intend_v such_o a_o infallibility_n as_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o faith_n and_o peace_n of_o his_o church_n he_o will_v not_o have_v deliver_v his_o mind_n more_o plain_o and_o clear_o than_o he_o be_v pretend_v to_o do_v in_o this_o matter_n how_o easy_o may_v all_o the_o contention_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n have_v be_v prevent_v if_o christ_n have_v cause_v it_o to_o be_v deliver_v in_o term_n so_o clear_a as_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n do_v require_v if_o he_o have_v say_v i_o do_v promise_v my_o infallible_a spirit_n to_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n in_o all_o age_n to_o give_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n in_o all_o controversy_n which_o shall_v arise_v among_o christian_n and_o i_o expect_v a_o obedience_n suitable_o to_o all_o their_o determination_n or_o more_o particular_o i_o appoint_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o all_o age_n for_o my_o successor_n in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n who_o shall_v be_v the_o stand_n and_o infallible_a judge_n of_o all_o controversy_n among_o christian_n this_o dispute_n may_v never_o have_v happen_v among_o we_o for_o we_o assure_v they_o that_o we_o account_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n so_o valuable_a a_o thing_n and_o obedience_n to_o christ_n command_n so_o necessary_a a_o duty_n that_o we_o be_v well_o enough_o incline_v to_o embrace_v the_o doctrine_n of_o infallibility_n if_o we_o can_v see_v any_o ground_n in_o scripture_n for_o it_o but_o we_o can_v make_v person_n infallible_a by_o believe_v they_o to_o be_v so_o but_o we_o may_v easy_o make_v ourselves_o fool_n as_o other_o have_v do_v by_o believe_v it_o without_o reason_n the_o controversy_n than_o be_v not_o whether_o infallibility_n in_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n be_v a_o desirable_a thing_n or_o not_o for_o so_o we_o say_v impeccability_n be_v too_o but_o the_o question_n be_v whether_o there_o be_v any_o such_o thing_n promise_v by_o christ_n to_o the_o guide_n of_o his_o church_n and_o whether_o all_o christian_n on_o that_o account_n be_v bind_v to_o yield_v their_o internal_a assent_n as_o well_o as_o external_a obedience_n to_o all_o their_o decree_n which_o we_o deny_v and_o desire_v to_o see_v it_o clear_o prove_v from_o his_o word_n who_o alone_o can_v grant_v this_o infallibility_n for_o if_o a_o infallible_a judge_n be_v therefore_o necessary_a because_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o sufficient_o clear_a for_o end_v of_o controversy_n and_o that_o god_n have_v actual_o constitute_v such_o a_o judge_n can_v be_v prove_v but_o by_o scripture_n sure_o we_o have_v all_o the_o reason_n in_o the_o world_n to_o expect_v that_o the_o scripture_n shall_v be_v abundant_o and_o beyond_o all_o contradiction_n clear_a in_o this_o point_n to_o make_v amends_o for_o its_o obscurity_n in_o the_o rest_n for_o if_o this_o point_n be_v not_o clear_o prove_v we_o be_v never_o the_o near_a an_o end_n of_o controversy_n because_o the_o business_n stop_v at_o the_o very_a head_n and_o they_o may_v beg_v their_o heart_n out_o before_o we_o shall_v ever_o be_v so_o good_a nature_a as_o to_o grant_v it_o they_o without_o proof_n and_o they_o who_o have_v be_v so_o bold_a shall_v i_o say_v or_o blasphemous_a as_o to_o charge_v our_o lord_n with_o want_n of_o discretion_n in_o case_n he_o have_v not_o provide_v his_o church_n with_o such_o a_o infallible_a judge_n do_v certain_o render_v he_o much_o more_o obnoxious_a to_o this_o imputation_n in_o suppose_v he_o to_o have_v constitute_v such_o a_o judge_n if_o he_o have_v no_o where_o plain_o declare_v that_o he_o have_v do_v so_o and_o let_v they_o if_o they_o can_v produce_v one_o clear_a text_n of_o scripture_n to_o this_o purpose_n which_o by_o the_o unanimous_a consent_n of_o the_o father_n be_v so_o interpret_v and_o which_o to_o the_o common_a sense_n of_o mankind_n be_v more_o sufficient_o clear_a for_o the_o end_n this_o controversy_n than_o the_o scripture_n be_v say_v by_o they_o to_o be_v in_o other_o necessary_a point_n of_o faith_n and_o till_o they_o have_v do_v this_o according_a to_o their_o own_o way_n of_o argue_v we_o have_v as_o much_o reason_n to_o deny_v their_o infallibility_n as_o they_o have_v to_o demand_v our_o assent_n to_o it_o upon_o the_o presume_a obscurity_n and_o insufficiency_n of_o scripture_n when_o i_o come_v thus_o prepare_v to_o find_v what_o the_o considerator_n will_v produce_v in_o a_o matter_n of_o such_o consequence_n 7._o i_o soon_o discern_v how_o little_a mind_n he_o have_v to_o insist_v upon_o any_o proof_n of_o that_o infallibility_n which_o be_v his_o only_a engine_n to_o overthrow_v my_o principle_n for_o after_o the_o most_o diligent_a search_n i_o can_v make_v the_o only_a argument_n from_o scripture_n i_o find_v produce_v be_v from_o the_o old_a testament_n where_o i_o confess_v i_o lest_o look_v for_o it_o but_o however_o this_o be_v think_v so_o considerable_a as_o to_o be_v twice_o produce_v 26._o and_o yet_o be_v so_o unlucky_a that_o if_o i_o understand_v any_o thing_n of_o the_o force_n of_o it_o it_o prove_v the_o judge_n in_o westminster_n hall_n to_o be_v infallible_a rather_o than_o the_o pope_n or_o any_o guide_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n for_o the_o force_n of_o the_o argument_n lie_v in_o god_n appoint_v judge_n under_o the_o law_n 〈…〉_z according_a to_o who_o sentence_n matter_n be_v to_o be_v determine_v upon_o penalty_n of_o death_n in_o case_n of_o disobedience_n but_o what_o then_o do_v this_o imply_v infallibility_n no_o that_o he_o dare_v not_o stand_v to_o but_o absolute_a obedience_n which_o we_o be_v ready_a to_o yield_v when_o we_o see_v the_o like_a absolute_a command_n for_o ecclesiastical_a judge_n of_o controversy_n of_o religion_n as_o there_o be_v among_o the_o jew_n for_o their_o supreme_a judge_n in_o matter_n of_o law_n but_o of_o this_o place_n i_o have_v already_o speak_v at_o large_a 239._o and_o show_v how_o impertinent_o it_o be_v produce_v for_o infallibility_n in_o the_o book_n he_o often_o refer_v to_o and_o might_n if_o he_o have_v think_v fit_a have_v answer_v what_o be_v there_o say_v before_o he_o have_v urge_v it_o again_o without_o any_o new_a strength_n
and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n to_o prove_v that_o commission_n from_o those_o write_n from_o which_o we_o be_v tell_v nothing_o can_v be_v certain_o deduce_v such_o a_o assistance_n not_o be_v suppose_v or_o to_o pretend_v that_o infallibility_n in_o a_o body_n of_o man_n be_v not_o as_o liable_a to_o doubt_n and_o dispute_v as_o in_o those_o book_n from_o whence_o only_o they_o derive_v their_o infallibility_n he_o grant_v the_o former_a part_n of_o this_o 37._o if_o by_o it_o be_v intend_v to_o prove_v such_o commission_n only_o or_o in_o the_o first_o place_n from_o these_o write_n but_o he_o say_v a_o christian_n faith_n may_v begin_v either_o at_o the_o infallible_a authority_n of_o scripture_n or_o of_o the_o church_n it_o seem_v then_o there_o may_v be_v sufficient_a ground_n for_o a_o christian_n faith_n as_o to_o the_o scripture_n without_o believe_v any_o thing_n of_o the_o church_n infallibility_n and_o for_o this_o we_o have_v reason_n to_o thank_v he_o whatever_o they_o of_o his_o own_o church_n think_v of_o it_o for_o by_o this_o concession_n we_o may_v believe_v the_o scripture_n authority_n without_o ever_o believe_v a_o word_n of_o the_o church_n infallibility_n and_o let_v they_o afterward_o prove_v it_o from_o scripture_n if_o they_o can_v nay_o he_o go_v yet_o far_o and_o say_v that_o the_o infallibility_n of_o scripture_n as_o well_o as_o the_o church_n may_v be_v prove_v from_o its_o own_o testimony_n but_o he_o first_o suppose_n that_o the_o infallibility_n of_o one_o of_o these_o be_v first_o learn_v from_o tradition_n and_o therefore_o in_o the_o remainder_n of_o his_o discourse_n on_o this_o subject_a he_o show_v how_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n may_v be_v prove_v from_o tradition_n not_o show_v at_o all_o how_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n can_v be_v prove_v from_o scripture_n scripture_n be_v thus_o desert_v 8._o as_o to_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o church_n infallibility_n infallibility_n i_o must_v pursue_v he_o to_o his_o other_o hold_n of_o tradition_n the_o method_n of_o his_o discourse_n be_v this_o that_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n be_v antecedent_n to_o the_o scripture_n 39_o that_o the_o apostle_n do_v not_o lose_v their_o infallibility_n by_o commit_v what_o they_o preach_v to_o writing_n that_o their_o successor_n be_v to_o have_v this_o infallibility_n preserve_v in_o they_o if_o there_o have_v be_v no_o write_n and_o can_v be_v imagine_v to_o have_v lose_v it_o because_o of_o they_o because_o these_o give_v testimony_n to_o it_o that_o this_o infallibility_n be_v preserve_v by_o tradition_n descend_v from_o age_n to_o age_n as_o we_o say_v the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n be_v deliver_v to_o we_o and_o last_o that_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n always_o hold_v and_o repute_v themselves_o infallible_a appear_v by_o their_o anathematise_v dissenter_n in_o this_o discourse_n there_o be_v some_o thing_n suppose_v without_o reason_n and_o other_o thing_n assert_v without_o proof_n the_o foundation_n of_o all_o this_o discourse_n proceed_v upon_o the_o supposition_n that_o the_o same_o infallibility_n which_o be_v in_o the_o apostle_n must_v be_v continue_v in_o their_o successor_n through_o all_o age_n of_o the_o church_n for_o which_o i_o see_v not_o the_o least_o shadow_n of_o reason_n produce_v yes_o say_v he_o suppose_v there_o have_v be_v no_o write_n and_o no_o infallibility_n christian_a religion_n will_v have_v be_v no_o rational_a and_o well_o ground_v no_o stable_n and_o certain_a religion_n two_o thing_n in_o answer_n to_o this_o i_o desire_v to_o be_v inform_v of_o 1._o what_o he_o think_v of_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o patriarch_n who_o receive_v their_o religion_n by_o tradition_n without_o any_o such_o infallibility_n 2._o what_o he_o think_v of_o those_o christian_n who_o receive_v the_o scripture_n or_o church_n infallibility_n by_o virtue_n of_o common_a and_o universal_a tradition_n which_o be_v certain_o the_o ground_n of_o the_o one_o and_o suppose_v by_o he_o to_o be_v of_o the_o other_o whether_o the_o faith_n of_o such_o person_n be_v rational_a and_o wellgrounded_n stable_n and_o certain_a or_o not_o if_o it_o be_v than_o there_o be_v no_o such_o necessity_n of_o infallibility_n for_o that_o purpose_n if_o it_o be_v not_o than_o he_o do_v hereby_o declare_v that_o the_o faith_n of_o christian_n be_v irrational_a and_o ill-grounded_a for_o whatsoever_o be_v receive_v on_o the_o account_n of_o tradition_n antecedent_n to_o the_o belief_n of_o infallibility_n can_v be_v receive_v on_o the_o account_n of_o it_o but_o the_o belief_n of_o either_o scripture_n or_o church_n infallibility_n must_v be_v first_o receive_v by_o virtue_n of_o a_o principle_n antecedent_n to_o the_o scripture_n or_o church_n infallibility_n viz._n tradition_n by_o this_o it_o appear_v that_o his_o very_a way_n of_o prove_v destroy_v the_o thing_n he_o will_v prove_v by_o it_o for_o if_o the_o tradition_n may_v be_v a_o sufficient_a ground_n of_o faith_n how_o come_v infallibility_n to_o be_v necessary_a but_o if_o this_o infallibility_n be_v not_o necessary_a without_o the_o scripture_n much_o less_o certain_o be_v it_o now_o since_o it_o be_v acknowledge_v on_o both_o side_n that_o the_o apostle_n be_v infallible_a in_o their_o write_n and_o that_o therein_o the_o will_n of_o god_n be_v contain_v as_o to_o all_o thing_n simple_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n but_o these_o successor_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o deprive_v of_o their_o infallibility_n by_o the_o apostle_n write_n no_o certain_o for_o none_o can_v be_v deprive_v of_o what_o they_o never_o have_v but_o where_o be_v the_o reason_n all_o this_o while_n to_o show_v that_o there_o be_v the_o same_o necessity_n of_o infallibility_n in_o the_o apostle_n successor_n as_o be_v in_o they_o two_o i_o find_v rather_o intimate_v than_o insist_v upon_o 1._o that_o the_o church_n will_v otherwise_o have_v fail_v if_o there_o have_v be_v neither_o write_n nor_o infallibility_n but_o if_o this_o argument_n hold_v for_o any_o thing_n it_o be_v for_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o not_o of_o infallibility_n for_o we_o see_v god_n do_v furnish_v the_o church_n with_o one_o and_o leave_v no_o footstep_n of_o the_o other_o we_o do_v not_o dispute_v how_o far_o the_o church_n may_v have_v be_v preserve_v without_o the_o scripture_n we_o find_v it_o have_v be_v hard_o enough_o to_o preserve_v it_o pure_a with_o they_o but_o we_o always_o acknowledge_v the_o infinite_a wisdom_n and_o goodness_n of_o god_n that_o have_v not_o leave_v we_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o salvation_n to_o the_o determination_n of_o man_n liable_a to_o be_v corrupt_v by_o interest_n and_o ambition_n but_o have_v appoint_v man_n inspire_v by_o himself_o to_o set_v down_o whatever_o be_v necessary_a for_o we_o to_o believe_v and_o practice_v and_o upon_o these_o write_n we_o fix_v our_o faith_n as_o on_o a_o firm_a and_o unmovable_a rock_n and_o on_o the_o veracity_n of_o god_n therein_o contain_v and_o express_v we_o build_v all_o our_o hope_n of_o a_o bless_a eternity_n and_o one_o great_a benefit_n more_o we_o have_v by_o these_o divine_a book_n that_o by_o they_o we_o can_v so_o easy_o discover_v the_o fraud_n and_o imposture_n of_o the_o confident_a pretender_n to_o infallibility_n which_o be_v the_o true_a reason_n why_o the_o patron_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n infallibility_n have_v so_o little_a kindness_n for_o the_o scripture_n and_o take_v all_o occasion_n to_o disparage_v they_o by_o insinuate_v that_o they_o be_v good_a for_o nothing_o but_o to_o breed_v heresy_n in_o the_o head_n of_o the_o people_n upon_o pretence_n of_o which_o danger_n they_o hide_v this_o candle_n under_o a_o bushel_n lest_o it_o shall_v give_v too_o much_o light_n to_o they_o that_o be_v in_o the_o house_n and_o discover_v some_o thing_n which_o it_o be_v more_o convenient_a to_o keep_v in_o the_o dark_a 2._o he_o say_v the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o apostle_n successor_n receive_v a_o second_o evidence_n from_o the_o testimony_n thereof_o find_v also_o in_o these_o write_n i_o confess_v i_o have_v see_v nothing_o like_o the_o first_o evidence_n yet_o to_o which_o this_o shall_v be_v a_o second_o but_o if_o by_o the_o first_o be_v mean_v that_o which_o i_o mention_v before_o this_o be_v a_o proper_a second_o for_o it_o neither_o of_o they_o i_o dare_v say_v intend_v any_o mischief_n to_o any_o body_n both_o first_o and_o second_o be_v force_v into_o the_o field_n where_o they_o stand_v only_o for_o dumb_a show_n and_o wonder_v what_o they_o be_v bring_v for_o but_o whereabout_o i_o pray_v do_v this_o second_o testimony_n stand_v what_o be_v its_o weapon_n i_o hope_v not_o dic_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la nor_o dabo_fw-la tibi_fw-la clave_n nor_o any_o of_o the_o old_a rusty_a armour_n which_o our_o modern_a combatant_n begin_v to_o be_v ashamed_a to_o appear_v
their_o own_o institution_n as_o to_o those_o of_o christ_n as_o in_o the_o 5._o sacrament_n they_o have_v add_v to_o the_o two_o of_o christ_n and_o to_o other_o ceremony_n in_o use_n among_o they_o 5._o set_v aside_o these_o consideration_n we_o dare_v appeal_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o any_o person_n of_o what_o persuasion_n soever_o whether_o the_o reason_n we_o plead_v for_o separation_n from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o in_o themselves_o far_o more_o considerable_a than_o those_o which_o be_v plead_v by_o such_o who_o separate_z from_o our_o church_n i.e._n whether_o our_o church_n impose_v of_o three_o ceremony_n declare_v to_o be_v indifferent_a by_o those_o who_o require_v they_o can_v be_v think_v by_o any_o man_n of_o common_a sense_n so_o great_a a_o burden_n to_o their_o conscience_n as_o all_o the_o load_n of_o superstitious_a foppery_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n whether_o pray_v by_o a_o prescribe_a form_n of_o word_n be_v as_o contrary_a to_o scripture_n as_o pray_v in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n whether_o there_o be_v no_o difference_n between_o kneel_v at_o the_o sacrament_n upon_o protestant_n principle_n and_o the_o papist_n adoration_n of_o the_o h●st_n whether_o transubstantiation_n image_n worship_n invocation_n of_o saint_n indulgence_n purgatory_n the_o pope_n supremacy_n be_v not_o somewhat_o hard_a thing_n to_o swallow_v than_o the_o church_n power_n to_o appoint_v matter_n of_o order_n and_o decency_n which_o particular_n make_v the_o difference_n so_o apparent_a between_o the_o separation_n of_o our_o church_n from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o that_o of_o dissenter_n from_o our_o church_n that_o it_o seem_v a_o very_a strange_a thing_n to_o i_o that_o this_o shall_v be_v object_v by_o our_o enemy_n on_o either_o side_n and_o thus_o much_o may_v suffice_v to_o clear_v this_o point_n of_o submission_n to_o the_o guide_n of_o a_o church_n of_o which_o i_o have_v the_o more_o large_o discourse_v not_o for_o any_o difficulty_n object_v by_o n._n o._n but_o because_o the_o thing_n itself_o do_v deserve_v to_o be_v more_o ample_o consider_v but_o some_o other_o thing_n relate_v to_o church-authority_n i_o must_v handle_v afterward_o and_o therefore_o now_o return_v to_o my_o adversary_n the_o next_o thing_n to_o be_v debate_v be_v scripture_n what_o assurance_n we_o can_v have_v of_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n in_o doubtful_a place_n if_o we_o allow_v no_o infallible_a guide_n to_o interpret_v they_o for_o that_o be_v the_o second_o main_a principle_n of_o n._n o._n that_o without_o this_o infallible_a assistance_n of_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n there_o can_v be_v no_o certainty_n of_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n and_o it_o be_v chief_o o●_n this_o account_n that_o n._n o._n do_v assert_v the_o necessity_n of_o infallible_a guide_n of_o the_o church_n for_o as_o appear_v by_o his_o concession_n he_o yield_v that_o the_o church_n infallibility_n be_v not_o necessary_a to_o the_o foundation_n of_o faith_n 37._o for_o man_n indeed_o he_o say_v may_v begin_v at_o the_o infallible_a authority_n of_o scripture_n but_o the_o main_a groun●_n on_o which_o he_o contend_v for_o the_o necessity_n of_o infallible_a guide_n be_v for_o the_o interpretation_n of_o controvert_v place_n and_o give_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n 14._o for_o which_o he_o often_o plead_v f●●_n necessity_n of_o a_o external_a infallible_a guide_n because_o god_n have_v refer_v all_o in_o the_o dubio●_n sense_n of_o scripture_n to_o the_o direction_n of_o his_o minister_n their_o spiritual_a guide_n 47._o who_o he_o 〈◊〉_d over_o they_o to_o bring_v they_o in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o faith_n to_o a_o perfect_a man_n 14._o and_o that_o they_o may_v not_o be_v toss_v to_o and_o fro_o and_o carry_v about_o with_o every_o wind_n of_o doctrine_n by_o the_o sleight_n of_o those_o who_o lie_v in_o wait_n to_o deceive_v and_o without_o which_o guide_n st._n peter_n observe_v that_o in_o his_o time_n some_o person_n for_o any_o thing_n we_o know_v diligent_a enough_o yet_o through_o want_n of_o learning_n and_o the_o instability_n of_o adhere_v to_o their_o guide_n be_v unlearned_a say_v he_o and_o unstable_a wrest_v some_o place_n of_o scripture_n hard_o to_o be_v understand_v to_o their_o own_o destruction_n 16._o therefore_o these_o scripture_n be_v also_o in_o some_o great_a and_o important_a point_n hard_a to_o be_v understand_v and_o afterward_o he_o say_v that_o christian_n who_o have_v sufficient_a certainty_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o christianity_n 67._o may_v be_v deficient_a in_o a_o right_a belief_n of_o several_a necessary_a article_n of_o this_o christian_a faith_n if_o destitute_a of_o that_o external_a infallible_a guide_n therein_o without_o which_o he_o determine_v that_o man_n must_v fluctuate_v and_o totter_v and_o vary_v one_o from_o another_o whilst_o the_o scripture_n be_v ambiguous_a in_o their_o sense_n and_o draw_v with_o much_o art_n to_o several_a interest_n the_o force_n of_o all_o which_o come_v to_o this_o that_o we_o can_v arrive_v at_o no_o certainty_n of_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n in_o controvert_v place_n without_o a_o external_a infallible_a guide_n and_o therefore_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o submit_v to_o he_o here_o be_v two_o thing_n to_o be_v discuss_v 1._o what_o necessity_n there_o be_v for_o the_o salvation_n of_o person_n to_o have_v a_o infallible_a interpretation_n of_o controvert_v place_n of_o scripture_n 2._o whether_o the_o deny_v such_o a_o infallible_a interpreter_n make_v man_n uncapable_a of_o attain_v any_o certain_a sense_n of_o doubtful_a place_n for_o if_o either_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o man_n shall_v have_v a_o infallible_a interpretation_n or_o man_n may_v attain_v at_o a_o certain_a sense_n without_o it_o than_o there_o can_v be_v no_o colour_n of_o a_o argument_n draw_v from_o hence_o to_o prove_v the_o necessity_n of_o a_o infallible_a guide_n 1._o we_o be_v to_o inquire_v into_o the_o necessity_n o●_n such_o a_o infallible_a interpretation_n of_o doubtful_a place_n of_o scripture_n there_o be_v but_o three_o ground_n on_o which_o it_o can_v be_v think_v necessary_a either_o that_o no_o man_n shall_v mistake_v in_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n or_o that_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n can_v be_v preserve_v or_o that_o man_n soul_n can_v be_v save_v without_o it_o if_o i●_n be_v necessary_a on_o the_o first_o account_n than_o every_o particular_a person_n must_v be_v infallible_a which_o be_v not_o plead_v for_o we_o must_v consider_v the_o other_o two_o ground_n of_o it_o but_o here_o we_o be_v 〈◊〉_d take_v notice_n that_o the_o matter_n of_o our_o prese●●_n enquiry_n be_v concern_v the_o clearness_n of_o scripture_n in_o order_n to_o the_o salvation_n of_o particular_a person_n of_o which_o the_o proposition_n lay_v dow●_n by_o i_o express_o speak_v if_o therefore_o n._n o._n do_v any_o thing_n to_o overthrow_v this_o he_o mu●●_n prove_v not_o that_o there_o be_v doubtful_a and_o controvert_v place_n which_o no_o one_o deny_v but_o that_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v so_o doubtful_a and_o obscure_a in_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o man_n salvation_n that_o person_n without_o a_o infallible_a guide_n can_v know_v the_o meaning_n of_o they_o if_o he_o prove_v not_o this_o he_o do_v not_o come_v near_o that_o which_o he_o ought_v to_o prove_v we_o do_v not_o therefore_o deny_v that_o there_o be_v place_n of_o great_a difficulty_n in_o the_o book_n of_o scripture_n but_o we_o assert_v that_o the_o necessary_n to_o salvation_n do_v not_o lie_v therein_o but_o those_o be_v plain_a and_o clear_a man_n may_v be_v save_v without_o know_v the_o other_o as_o a_o seaman_n may_v safe_o direct_v his_o compass_n by_o the_o star_n although_o he_o can_v solve_v all_o the_o difficulty_n of_o astronomy_n can_v any_o man_n in_o his_o sense_n imagine_v that_o christ_n come_v into_o the_o world_n to_o die_v for_o sinner_n and_o the_o precept_n of_o a_o holy_a life_n which_o he_o have_v give_v and_o the_o motive_n thereto_o from_o his_o second_o come_v to_o judge_v the_o world_n be_v not_o more_o plain_a than_o the_o apocalyphical_a vision_n or_o the_o proof_n for_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n infallibility_n if_o a_o person_n then_o by_o read_v and_o consider_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v plain_a may_v do_v what_o christ_n require_v for_o his_o salvation_n what_o necessity_n have_v such_o a_o one_o to_o trouble_v himself_o about_o a_o infallible_a guide_n for_o either_o he_o may_v go_v to_o heaven_n without_o he_o or_o not_o if_o he_o may_v let_v they_o show_v the_o necessity_n he_o be_v of_o to_o that_o end_n which_o may_v be_v attain_v without_o he_o if_o not_o than_o the_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n can_v be_v know_v without_o he_o let_v this_o be_v prove_v and_o i_o will_v immediate_o yield_v the_o whole_a cause_n and_o till_o it_o be_v prove_v my_o principle_n
peace_n if_o controversy_n be_v refer_v to_o a_o infallible_a judge_n we_o must_v therefore_o allow_v every_o one_o that_o pretend_v to_o it_o to_o be_v such_o a_o infallible_a guide_n and_o we_o must_v on_o the_o same_o ground_n allow_v every_o one_o if_o we_o must_v not_o first_o be_v satisfy_v of_o the_o ground_n on_o which_o it_o be_v challenge_v by_o any_o one_o and_o withal_o since_o christ_n be_v the_o best_a judge_n of_o what_o be_v fit_a for_o his_o church_n we_o must_v see_v by_o his_o law_n whether_o he_o have_v make_v it_o necessary_a for_o all_o controversy_n to_o be_v end_v by_o a_o stand_a judge_n that_o shall_v arise_v about_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n if_o he_o have_v not_o do_v it_o it_o be_v to_o no_o purpose_n to_o say_v it_o be_v fit_a he_o shall_v have_v do_v it_o for_o that_o be_v to_o upbraid_v christ_n with_o weakness_n and_o not_o to_o end_v difference_n in_o his_o church_n 2._o suppose_v it_o necessary_a that_o controversy_n shall_v be_v end_v it_o may_v as_o well_o be_v do_v without_o a_o infallible_a judge_n of_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n as_o with_o one_o for_o all_o that_o be_v pretend_v to_o be_v do_v by_o a_o infallible_a judge_n be_v to_o give_v a_o certain_a sense_n of_o controvert_v place_n so_o that_o man_n be_v either_o bind_v to_o look_v on_o that_o which_o they_o give_v as_o the_o certain_a sense_n on_o the_o account_n of_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o interpreter_n or_o that_o such_o a_o infallible_a interpretation_n be_v set_v aside_o there_o be_v no_o way_n to_o know_v the_o certain_a sense_n of_o scripture_n if_o the_o first_o than_o no_o man_n can_v be_v more_o certain_a of_o the_o sense_n of_o any_o doubtful_a place_n than_o he_o be_v of_o the_o infallibility_n of_o his_o interpreter_n i_o desire_v therefore_o to_o be_v resolve_v in_o this_o case_n i_o be_o tell_v i_o can_v arrive_v at_o no_o certainty_n of_o the_o sense_n of_o doubtful_a place_n of_o scripture_n without_o a_o infallible_a interpreter_n i_o say_v the_o place_n of_o scripture_n which_o be_v allege_v for_o such_o a_o infallible_a judge_n be_v the_o most_o doubtful_a and_o controvert_v of_o any_o i_o will_v fain_o understand_v by_o what_o mean_v i_o may_v come_v to_o be_v certain_a of_o the_o meaning_n of_o these_o place_n and_o to_o find_v out_o the_o sense_n of_o they_o must_v i_o do_v it_o only_o by_o a_o infallible_a guide_n but_o that_o be_v the_o thing_n i_o be_o now_o seek_v for_o and_o i_o must_v not_o suppose_v that_o which_o i_o be_o to_o prove_v if_o i_o may_v be_v certain_a without_o suppose_v such_o a_o infallible_a guide_n of_o the_o meaning_n of_o these_o very_a doubtful_a and_o controvert_v place_n than_z why_o may_v i_o not_o by_o the_o same_o way_n of_o proceed_v arrive_n at_o the_o certainty_n of_o any_o other_o less_o doubtful_a and_o obscure_a place_n unless_o there_o be_v some_o private_a way_n to_o come_v at_o the_o sense_n of_o those_o place_n which_o will_v hold_v for_o none_o else_o beside_o they_o which_o be_v not_o so_o easy_a to_o understand_v 2._o i_o come_v therefore_o to_o the_o second_o enquiry_n which_o be_v about_o the_o mean_n of_o attain_v the_o certain_a sense_n of_o scripture_n in_o doubtful_a place_n without_o the_o supposition_n of_o a_o infallible_a guide_n it_o will_v not_o i_o hope_v be_v deny_v that_o the_o primitive_a christian_a church_n have_v a_o certain_a way_n of_o understand_v the_o sense_n of_o doubtful_a place_n as_o far_o as_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v understand_v and_o that_o they_o want_v no_o mean_n which_o christ_n have_v appoint_v for_o the_o end_n of_o controversy_n but_o i_o shall_v now_o show_v that_o they_o proceed_v by_o no_o other_o mean_n than_o what_o we_o use_v so_o that_o if_o they_o have_v any_o mean_n to_o come_v to_o a_o certain_a sense_n of_o scripture_n we_o have_v the_o same_o and_o it_o will_v be_v a_o ve●y_n hard_a case_n if_o by_o the_o use_n of_o the_o same_o mean_n we_o can_v attain_v the_o same_o end_n i_o shall_v therefore_o give_v a_o account_n of_o the_o proceed_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n in_o this_o weighty_a controversy_n concern_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n in_o doubtful_a place_n and_o if_o no_o such_o thing_n be_v then_o hear_v off_o as_o a_o infallible_a judge_n it_o be_v a_o plain_a demonstration_n they_o think_v there_o be_v none_o appoint_v because_o the_o dispute_n that_o happen_v then_o require_v as_o much_o the_o authority_n of_o such_o a_o judge_n as_o any_o that_o be_v at_o this_o day_n in_o the_o christian_a church_n in_o the_o first_o age_n of_o christianity_n there_o be_v two_o sort_n of_o controversy_n which_o disturb_v the_o church_n scripture_n one_o be_v concern_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o book_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o the_o other_o concern_v the_o sense_n of_o they_o for_o there_o be_v no_o one_o book_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n who_o authority_n be_v not_o call_v in_o question_n by_o some_o heretic_n in_o those_o first_o age_n the_o gnostic_n by_o who_o i_o understand_v the_o follower_n of_o simon_n magus_n menander_n saturninus_n and_o basilides_n ha●_n frame_v a_o new_a religion_n of_o their_o own_o under_o the_o name_n of_o christian_a and_o have_v no_o regard_n to_o the_o write_n either_o of_o the_o old_a or_o new_a testament_n but_o have_v a_o book_n of_o their_o own_o which_o they_o call_v the_o gospel_n of_o perfection_n but_o as_o epiphanius_n well_o observe_v 3._o no_o man_n that_o have_v understanding_n needs_o scripture_n to_o refute_v such_o a_o religion_n as_o they_o be_v for_o right_a reason_n alone_o be_v sufficient_a to_o discover_v the_o folly_n and_o filthiness_n of_o it_o 〈…〉_z the_o follower_n of_o cerinthus_n and_o ebion_n acknowledge_v no_o other_o gospel_n but_o that_o of_o st._n matthew_n 〈…〉_z and_o that_o not_o entire_a but_o with_o diverse_a corruption_n and_o interpolation_n according_a to_o their_o several_a fancy_n cerdon_n and_o martion_n allow_v no_o gospel_n but_o that_o of_o st._n luke_n 11._o which_o they_o alter_v according_a to_o their_o pleasure_n cut_v off_o the_o genealogy_n and_o other_o place_n and_o insert_v many_o thing_n as_o it_o serve_v most_o to_o their_o purpose_n as_o may_v be_v see_v at_o large_a in_o epiphanius_n 42._o some_o say_v the_o valentinian_o receive_v no_o other_o gospel_n but_o that_o of_o st._n john_n as_o the_o alogi_fw-la in_o epiphanius_n reject_v that_o alone_a but_o i_o do_v not_o find_v that_o valentinus_n do_v reject_v any_o but_o add_v more_o 11._o for_o irenaeus_n charge_v the_o valentinian_o only_a with_o add_v another_o gospel_n which_o they_o call_v the_o gospel_n of_o truth_n and_o tertullian_n express_o say_v that_o valentinus_n therein_o differ_v from_o martion_n 38._o that_o martion_n cut_v off_o what_o he_o please_v with_o his_o sword_n but_o valentinus_n corrupt_v it_o with_o his_o pen_n for_o although_o he_o allow_v all_o the_o book_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n yet_o he_o pervert_v the_o meaning_n of_o they_o eusebius_n tell_v we_o that_o the_o follower_n of_o severus_n reject_v the_o epistle_n of_o s._n paul_n and_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n 29._o and_o interpret_v the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n and_o the_o gospel_n after_o a_o peculiar_a sense_n of_o their_o own_o so_o that_o we_o see_v those_o who_o undertake_v to_o confute_v these_o heretic_n be_v not_o only_o to_o vindicate_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n but_o to_o dispute_v with_o such_o who_o do_v not_o own_o the_o same_o book_n which_o they_o do_v and_o therefore_o be_v force_v to_o use_v such_o way_n of_o argue_v as_o be_v proper_a to_o they_o as_o may_v be_v see_v at_o large_a by_o the_o proceed_n of_o irenaeus_n and_o tertullian_n against_o they_o but_o because_o the_o valentinian_o and_o marcionite_n do_v endeavour_v to_o suit_v their_o extravagant_a fancy_n to_o the_o scripture_n allow_v by_o they_o it_o will_v be_v necessary_a for_o we_o to_o inquire_v by_o what_o mean_v they_o go_v about_o to_o clear_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n from_o their_o false_a gloss_n and_o interpretation_n irenaeus_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o book_n relate_v at_o large_a the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o val●ntinians_n 1._o say_v that_o by_o the_o perverse_a interpretation_n and_o corrupt_a exposition_n of_o the_o scripture_n they_o draw_v away_o unstable_a mind_n from_o the_o true_a faith_n for_o they_o pretend_v to_o find_v out_o deep_o and_o more_o mysterious_a thing_n in_o the_o scripture_n than_o other_o be_v acquaint_v with_o viz._n that_o christ_n intimate_v the_o 30._o aeön_n by_o not_o appear_v till_o the_o 30._o year_n of_o his_o age._n that_o the_o parable_n of_o man_n call_v at_o the_o first_o the_o three_o the_o six_o the_o nine_o the_o eleven_o hour_n refer_v to_o the_o same_o thing_n for_o those_o hour_n make_v up_o
very_a next_o chapter_n urge_v this_o as_o the_o consequence_n of_o it_o that_o have_v truth_n for_o our_o rule_n and_o so_o plain_a testimony_n of_o god_n man_n ought_v not_o to_o perplex_v themselves_o with_o doubtful_a question_n concern_v god_n but_o grow_v in_o the_o love_n of_o he_o who_o have_v do_v and_o do_v so_o great_a thing_n for_o we_o and_o never_o fall_v off_o from_o that_o knowledge_n which_o be_v most_o clear_o reveal_v and_o we_o ought_v to_o be_v content_a with_o what_o be_v clear_o make_v know_v in_o the_o scripture_n because_o they_o be_v perfect_a as_o come_v from_o the_o w●rd_n and_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o we_o need_v 〈◊〉_d ●onder_o if_o there_o be_v many_o thing_n in_o religion_n above_o our_o understanding_n since_o there_o be_v so_o in_o natural_a thing_n which_o be_v daily_o see_v by_o we_o as_o in_o the_o nature_n of_o bird_n water_n air_n meteor_n etc._n etc._n of_o which_o we_o may_v talk_v much_o but_o only_o god_n know_v what_o the_o truth_n be_v therefore_o why_o shall_v we_o think_v much_o if_o it_o be_v so_o in_o religion_n too_o wherein_o be_v some_o thing_n we_o may_v understand_v and_o other_o we_o must_v leave_v to_o god_n and_o if_o we_o do_v so_o we_o shall_v keep_v our_o faith_n without_o danger_n and_o all_o scripture_n be_v agreeable_a to_o itself_o the_o dark_a place_n must_v be_v understand_v in_o a_o way_n most_o suitable_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o plain_a 3._o the_o sense_n they_o give_v of_o scripture_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n receive_v by_o all_o true_a christian_n from_o the_o beginning_n which_o he_o call_v the_o unmoveable_a rule_n of_o faith_n receive_v in_o baptism_n 1._o and_o which_o the_o church_n disperse_v over_o the_o earth_n do_v equal_o receive_v in_o all_o place_n 2._o with_o a_o wonderful_a consent_n for_o although_o the_o place_n and_o language_n be_v never_o so_o distant_a or_o different_a from_o each_o other_o 3._o yet_o the_o faith_n be_v the_o very_a same_o as_o there_o be_v one_o sun_n which_o enlighten_v the_o whole_a world_n which_o say_v none_o do_v enlarge_v or_o diminish_v and_o after_o have_v show_v the_o great_a absurdity_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o enemy_n of_o this_o faith_n in_o his_o first_o and_o second_o book_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o three_o he_o show_v that_o the_o apostle_n do_v full_o understand_v the_o mind_n of_o christ_n 1._o that_o they_o preach_v the_o same_o doctrine_n which_o the_o church_n receive_v and_o which_o after_o their_o preach_v it_o be_v commit_v to_o write_v by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n in_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v the_o true_a reason_n why_o the_o heretic_n do_v go_v about_o to_o disparage_v the_o scripture_n because_o they_o be_v condemn_v by_o they_o 2._o therefore_o they_o will_v not_o allow_v they_o sufficient_a authority_n and_o charge_v they_o with_o contradiction_n and_o so_o great_a obscurity_n that_o the_o truth_n can_v not_o be_v find_v in_o they_o without_o the_o help_n of_o tradition_n which_o they_o account_v the_o key_n to_o unlock_v all_o the_o difficulty_n of_o scripture_n and_o be_v not_o to_o be_v seek_v for_o in_o write_n but_o be_v deliver_v down_o from_o hand_n to_o hand_n for_o which_o cause_n st._n paul_n say_v we_o speak_v wisdom_n among_o they_o that_o be_v perfect_a which_o wisdom_n they_o pretend_v to_o be_v among_o themselves_o on_o this_o account_n the_o matter_n of_o tradition_n come_v first_o into_o dispute_n in_o the_o christian_a church_n and_o irenaeus_n appeal_v to_o the_o most_o eminent_a church_n and_o especial_o that_o of_o rome_n 3._o because_o of_o the_o great_a resort_n of_o christian_n thither_o whether_o any_o such_o tradition_n be_v ever_o receive_v among_o they_o and_o all_o the_o church_n of_o asia_n receive_v the_o same_o faith_n from_o the_o apostle_n and_o know_v of_o no_o such_o tradition_n as_o the_o valentinian_o pretend_v to_o 4._o and_o there_o be_v no_o reason_n to_o think_v that_o so_o many_o church_n found_v by_o the_o apostle_n or_o christ_n shall_v be_v ignorant_a of_o such_o a_o tradition_n and_o suppose_v no_o scripture_n at_o all_o have_v be_v write_v by_o the_o apostle_n we_o must_v then_o have_v follow_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o most_o ancient_a and_o apostolical_a church_n and_o even_o the_o most_o barbarous_a nation_n that_o have_v embrace_v christianity_n without_o any_o write_n yet_o full_o agree_v with_o other_o church_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n for_o that_o be_v it_o he_o mean_v by_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n viz._n a_o summary_n comprehension_n of_o the_o doctrine_n receive_v among_o christian_n such_o as_o the_o creed_n be_v mention_v by_o irenaeus_n 2._o and_o afterward_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o valentinian_o in_o opposition_n to_o that_o of_o the_o sound_a christian_n praebat_fw-la from_o hence_o irenaeus_n proceed_v to_o confute_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o valentinian_o by_o scripture_n and_o reason_n in_o the_o three_o praehat_fw-la four_o and_o five_o book_n all_o which_o way_n of_o find_v out_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n in_o doubtful_a place_n we_o allow_v of_o and_o approve_v and_o be_v always_o ready_a to_o appeal_v to_o they_o in_o any_o of_o the_o matter_n controvert_v between_o we_o and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o irenaeus_n know_v nothing_o of_o any_o infallible_a judge_n to_o determine_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n for_o if_o he_o have_v it_o will_v have_v be_v very_o strange_a he_o shall_v have_v go_v so_o much_o the_o far_a way_n about_o when_o he_o may_v so_o easy_o have_v tell_v the_o valentinian_o that_o god_n have_v entrust_v the_o guide_n of_o his_o church_n especial_o at_o rome_n with_o the_o faculty_n of_o interpret_n scripture_n and_o that_o all_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o believe_v that_o to_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o it_o which_o they_o declare_v and_o no_o other_o but_o man_n must_v be_v pardon_v if_o they_o do_v not_o write_v that_o which_o never_o enter_v into_o their_o head_n after_o irenaeus_n tertullian_n set_v himself_o the_o most_o to_o dispute_v against_o those_o who_o oppose_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o method_n he_o take_v in_o his_o boh_o of_o praescription_n of_o heretic_n be_v this_o 1._o that_o there_o must_v be_v a_o certain_a unalterable_a rule_n of_o faith_n 8._o for_o he_o that_o believe_v do_v not_o only_o suppose_v sufficient_a ground_n for_o his_o faith_n but_o bound_n that_o be_v set_v to_o it_o and_o therefore_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o further_a search_n since_o the_o gospel_n be_v reveal_v this_o he_o speak_v to_o take_v away_o the_o pretence_n of_o the_o seeker_n of_o those_o day_n 9_o who_o be_v always_o cry_v seek_v and_o you_o shall_v find_v to_o which_o he_o reply_n that_o we_o be_v to_o consider_v not_o the_o bare_a word_n but_o the_o reason_n of_o they_o and_o in_o the_o first_o place_n we_o be_v to_o suppose_v this_o that_o there_o be_v one_o certain_a and_o fix_a doctrine_n deliver_v by_o christ_n which_o all_o nation_n be_v bind_v to_o believe_v and_o therefore_o to_o seek_v that_o when_o they_o have_v find_v they_o may_v believe_v it_o 10_o therefore_o all_o our_o inquiry_n be_v to_o be_v confine_v within_o that_o compass_n what_o that_o doctrine_n be_v which_o christ_n deliver_v for_o otherwise_o there_o will_v be_v no_o end_n of_o seek_v 2._o he_o show_v what_o this_o rule_n of_o faith_n be_v by_o repeat_v the_o article_n of_o the_o ancient_a creed_n which_o he_o say_v be_v universal_o receive_v among_o true_a christian_n and_o dispute_v by_o none_o but_o heretic_n 13._o which_o rule_n of_o faith_n be_v embrace_v than_o he_o say_v a_o liberty_n be_v allow_v for_o other_o inquiry_n in_o doubtful_a or_o obscure_a matter_n for_o faith_n lie_v in_o the_o rule_n 14_o but_o other_o thing_n be_v matter_n of_o skill_n and_o curiosity_n and_o it_o be_v faith_n which_o save_v man_n and_o not_o their_o skill_n in_o expound_v scripture_n and_o while_o man_n keep_v themselves_o within_o that_o rule_n they_o be_v safe_a enough_o for_o to_o know_v nothing_o beyond_o it_o be_v to_o know_v all_o 3._o but_o they_o pretend_v scripture_n for_o what_o they_o deliver_v and_o by_o that_o mean_n unsettle_v the_o mind_n of_o many_o to_o this_o he_o answer_v several_a way_n 1._o that_o such_o person_n as_o those_o be_v ought_v not_o to_o be_v admit_v to_o a_o dispute_n concern_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n because_o they_o rather_o deserve_v to_o be_v censure_v than_o dispute_v for_o bring_v such_o new_a heresy_n into_o the_o church_n 16._o but_o chief_o because_o it_o be_v to_o no_o purpose_n to_o dispute_v with_o they_o about_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n who_o receive_v what_o scripture_n they_o please_v themselves_o and_o add_v and_o take_v away_o as_o they_o
the_o argument_n from_o parity_n of_o reason_n p._n 137._o of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n in_o ten_o proposition_n p._n 142._o the_o case_n of_o vigilius_n and_o honorius_n at_o large_a discuss_v p._n 154_o 159._o the_o different_a case_n of_o the_o separation_n of_o dissenter_n from_o our_o church_n and_o our_o separation_n from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n p._n 180._o of_o the_o mean_n to_o attain_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n without_o a_o infallible_a guide_n p._n 186._o of_o the_o necessity_n of_o a_o judge_n in_o controversy_n p._n 191._o the_o way_n use_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n for_o find_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n through_o several_a age_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n from_o the_o most_o authentic_a writer_n of_o they_o p._n 198._o church_n authority_n not_o destroy_v by_o my_o principle_n p._n 260._o what_o authority_n we_o allow_v to_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n p._n 267._o the_o roman_a church_n way_n of_o suppress_v sect_n compare_v with_o we_o p._n 286._o errata_fw-la page_n 20._o line_n 13._o read_v the_o church_n p._n 26._o l._n 14_o for_o and_o r._n that_o p._n 49._o l._n ●_o for_o here_o r._n wh●re_v p_o 176_o l_o 23._o r._n eutychianism_n p._n 177._o l._n 8._o r._n follow_v p._n 17._o l._n 5._o r._n patriarchal_a p._n 182._o l._n 14._o for_o by_o r._n ●e_n p._n 189._o l._n 22._o r._n apocalyptic●_n p._n 209._o l._n 30._o for_o boh_o r._n book_n p._n 225._o marg_n r._n vales._n not_o ad_fw-la eusch._n p._n 273._o 〈◊〉_d r._n euclid_n p._n 271._o l._n 7._o for_o he_o make_v this_o r._n this_o be_v make_v p._n 280._o l._n 5._o blot_v ●_o one_o the._n the_o preface_n when_o i_o publish_v the_o late_a book_n 1●_n which_o have_v so_o much_o enrage_v those_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n against_o i_o answer_n i_o think_v i_o have_v reason_n to_o expect_v that_o a_o just_a answer_n shall_v be_v make_v to_o it_o but_o they_o have_v take_v a_o effectual_a course_n to_o undeceive_v i_o for_o by_o this_o new_a way_n i_o perceive_v their_o utmost_a ambition_n be_v to_o have_v something_o abroad_o which_o among_o themselves_o may_v pass_v for_o a_o answer_n which_o put_v i_o in_o mind_n of_o what_o i_o have_v hear_v a_o great_a person_n say_v when_o he_o have_v undertake_v to_o manage_v a_o ill_a cause_n before_o a_o public_a audience_n and_o one_o of_o his_o friend_n ask_v he_o what_o he_o mean_v by_o it_o trouble_v not_o yourself_o say_v he_o our_o own_o side_n will_v be_v sure_a to_o believe_v i_o it_o be_v sure_o some_o such_o presumption_n as_o this_o which_o make_v the_o learned_a author_n of_o these_o two_o elaborate_a pamphlet_n to_o appear_v in_o such_o a_o manner_n in_o print_n as_o if_o it_o be_v no_o great_a matter_n what_o they_o say_v so_o their_o people_n may_v have_v this_o to_o say_v and_o if_o they_o can_v believe_v it_o too_o that_o my_o book_n be_v answer_v if_o this_o be_v all_o their_o cause_n will_v afford_v it_o deserve_v rather_o to_o be_v pity_v than_o confute_v if_o it_o will_v bear_v more_o they_o be_v as_o bad_a manager_n of_o it_o as_o their_o enemy_n can_v wish_v for_o however_o i_o be_v threaten_v before_o hand_n that_o such_o answer_n be_v come_v abroad_o every_o line_n of_o which_o will_v fetch_v blood_n yet_o as_o cruel_a as_o they_o be_v when_o we_o be_v under_o their_o lash_n i_o find_v that_o which_o they_o design_v for_o my_o punishment_n to_o give_v i_o no_o small_a pleasure_n and_o i_o never_o have_v so_o good_a a_o opinion_n of_o the_o mercifulness_n of_o their_o church_n as_o when_o i_o see_v with_o what_o feeble_a hand_n they_o chastise_v i_o i_o have_v hear_v so_o much_o of_o their_o rage_n that_o i_o expect_v their_o great_a strength_n will_v be_v employ_v upon_o i_o and_o i_o can_v not_o tell_v what_o zamzummims_n they_o may_v hitherto_o keep_v in_o the_o dark_a who_o arm_n be_v not_o to_o be_v make_v use_n of_o but_o upon_o some_o special_a occasion_n when_o a_o adversary_n be_v to_o be_v dispatch_v all_o at_o once_o and_o so_o perfect_o subdue_v as_o never_o to_o appear_v more_o while_o i_o be_v prepare_v myself_o for_o this_o kind_n of_o martyrdom_n out_o come_v these_o mighty_a man_n of_o valour_n who_o have_v beat_v nothing_o that_o i_o know_v of_o but_o the_o air_n and_o themselves_o for_o they_o have_v neither_o tie_v my_o tongue_n nor_o break_v my_o heart_n nor_o fetch_v one_o drop_n of_o blood_n that_o i_o can_v yet_o find_v all_o which_o be_v thing_n i_o be_v tell_v will_v be_v do_v when_o these_o answer_n come_v abroad_o which_o threaten_n make_v so_o loud_a a_o noise_n that_o i_o hear_v the_o report_n of_o they_o not_o only_o near_a home_n but_o from_o very_o distant_a person_n and_o place_n but_o lest_o i_o shall_v be_v think_v only_o to_o despise_v my_o adversary_n which_o i_o confess_v they_o have_v give_v i_o no_o small_a occasion_n to_o do_v i_o shall_v bestow_v a_o particular_a examination_n upon_o what_o they_o have_v offer_v by_o way_n of_o answer_n to_o my_o book_n 2._o only_o i_o think_v it_o reasonable_a in_o the_o first_o place_n to_o take_v notice_n of_o their_o present_a way_n and_o method_n of_o answer_v book_n wherein_o they_o make_v use_v of_o as_o many_o artifices_fw-la as_o they_o do_v in_o gain_v proselyte_n when_o we_o set_v ourselves_o to_o answer_v their_o book_n we_o endeavour_v to_o state_n the_o controversy_n plain_o to_o examine_v their_o proof_n to_o apply_v distinct_a answer_n to_o their_o argument_n fair_o represent_v in_o their_o own_o word_n and_o to_o render_v the_o whole_a discourse_n as_o clear_v and_o perspicuous_a as_o may_v be_v that_o all_o person_n may_v be_v capable_a of_o judge_v on_o which_o side_n the_o great_a strength_n and_o evidence_n lie_v this_o be_v the_o mighty_a advantage_n which_o a_o good_a cause_n give_v we_o we_o make_v use_v of_o no_o trick_n to_o deceive_v man_n nor_o sophistical_a cavil_n to_o confound_v and_o perplex_v thing_n we_o dare_v appeal_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o any_o impartial_a person_n who_o will_v take_v the_o pain_n to_o examine_v the_o matter_n in_o difference_n between_o we_o but_o in_o their_o late_a deal_n with_o we_o they_o seek_v to_o avoid_v the_o main_a thing_n in_o dispute_n and_o abhor_v any_o methodical_a proceed_n one_o man_n pick_v out_o a_o sentence_n here_o and_o there_o to_o answer_v another_o a_o page_n or_o two_o together_o a_o three_o leap_v from_o one_o thing_n to_o another_o as_o if_o resolve_v to_o pass_v by_o the_o great_a difficulty_n but_o he_o be_v a_o man_n of_o courage_n indeed_o that_o dare_v fall_v upon_o the_o rear_n and_o begin_v to_o confute_v a_o book_n at_o the_o end_n of_o it_o so_o that_o if_o he_o live_v long_o enough_o and_o get_v heart_n he_o may_v in_o time_n come_v to_o the_o beginning_n and_o if_o we_o observe_v they_o all_o they_o look_v for_o nothing_o so_o much_o as_o some_o cleanly_a way_n of_o escape_n and_o if_o they_o can_v but_o raise_v such_o a_o dust_n as_o to_o fly_v away_o without_o be_v open_o discern_v to_o do_v so_o this_o they_o hope_v those_o of_o their_o own_o side_n will_v be_v so_o kind_a and_o partial_a as_o to_o call_v a_o victory_n these_o be_v no_o general_a accusation_n but_o such_o as_o be_v easy_a to_o observe_v in_o their_o deal_n with_o i_o as_o to_o my_o former_a book_n and_o that_o late_o publish_v but_o to_o judicious_a man_n all_o these_o little_a art_n and_o shift_n be_v either_o plain_a acknowledgement_n of_o a_o baffle_a cause_n or_o a_o argument_n of_o a_o weak_a and_o unskilful_a management_n if_o the_o book_n itself_o be_v a_o little_a too_o troublesome_a to_o be_v meddle_v with_o 3._o it_o be_v best_o to_o fall_v upon_o the_o author_n i_o and_o it_o be_v a_o hard_a case_n if_o by_o false_a and_o ridiculous_a story_n or_o open_a calumny_n or_o at_o least_o base_a and_o ugly_a insinuation_n they_o can_v diminish_v his_o reputation_n and_o then_o they_o hope_v the_o book_n will_v sink_v with_o its_o author_n but_o we_o be_v not_o ignorant_a who_o cause_n be_v wont_a to_o be_v manage_v by_o such_o device_n as_o these_o be_v and_o from_o who_o they_o have_v learn_v this_o method_n of_o confute_v adversary_n as_o for_o all_o their_o rail_a accusation_n against_o i_o i_o shall_v not_o so_o much_o as_o desire_v god_n to_o rebuke_v they_o but_o only_o pray_v that_o he_o will_v pardon_v they_o and_o if_o i_o must_v thank_v they_o for_o any_o thing_n it_o be_v for_o give_v i_o the_o occasion_n for_o exercise_v so_o great_a a_o charity_n i_o have_v learn_v of_o he_o who_o when_o he_o be_v revile_v revile_v not_o again_o not_o only_o to_o forbear_v reproach_v they_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n but_o to_o return_v they_o good_a for_o evil_n
very_a mean_a one_o of_o the_o book_n of_o scripture_n and_o the_o divine_a revelation_n therein_o contain_v i_o can_v here_o earnest_o entreat_v the_o wise_a man_n of_o that_o church_n for_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n and_o the_o christian_a religion_n not_o to_o suffer_v such_o inconsiderate_a person_n to_o vindicate_v their_o cause_n who_o to_o defend_v the_o extravagant_a infirmity_n of_o some_o enthusiastical_a woman_n among_o they_o be_v so_o forward_o to_o cast_v dirt_n and_o reproach_n upon_o our_o common_a religion_n and_o those_o revelation_n from_o whence_o we_o derive_v it_o but_o i_o forbear_v only_o it_o be_v a_o shrewd_a sign_n if_o this_o way_n be_v allow_v of_o a_o wretched_a cause_n that_o can_v be_v maintain_v without_o plunge_v those_o who_o rely_v upon_o their_o word_n into_o the_o depth_n of_o atheism_n but_o these_o be_v not_o thing_n to_o be_v so_o slight_o pass_v over_o they_o deserve_v a_o full_a and_o severe_a chastisement_n for_o the_o present_a this_o be_v enough_o to_o show_v what_o monstrous_a absurdity_n this_o way_n of_o vindicate_v their_o church_n from_o fanaticism_n have_v bring_v i._n w._n to_o yet_o in_o one_o respect_n he_o deserve_v some_o pardon_n for_o they_o be_v wont_n to_o write_v their_o answer_n upon_o the_o common_a theme_n out_o of_o some_o staunch_a author_n who_o consider_v a_o little_o better_a what_o they_o write_v but_o this_o be_v a_o new_a charge_n and_o neither_o bellarmin_n becanus_n nor_o any_o of_o their_o old_a beat_a soldier_n can_v give_v they_o any_o assistance_n they_o find_v not_o the_o title_n of_o the_o fanaticism_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o any_o of_o their_o common-place-book_n therefore_o plain_a mother-wit_n must_v help_v they_o and_o so_o it_o have_v brave_o but_o before_o they_o again_o attempt_v this_o matter_n i_o desire_v they_o to_o consider_v these_o thing_n lest_o they_o shall_v in_o a_o desperate_a humour_n utter_o give_v up_o the_o cause_n of_o religion_n find_v themselves_o unable_a to_o defend_v that_o of_o their_o church_n 1._o whether_o there_o can_v be_v any_o great_a fanaticism_n than_o a_o false_a pretence_n to_o immediate_a divine_a revelation_n for_o what_o can_v more_o expose_v man_n to_o all_o the_o folly_n and_o delusion_n imaginable_a than_o this_o will_v do_v what_o action_n can_v be_v so_o wild_a and_o extravagant_a but_o man_n may_v do_v under_o such_o a_o pretence_n of_o immediate_a revelation_n from_o god_n what_o bound_n of_o order_n and_o government_n can_v be_v preserve_v some_o may_v pretend_v a_o revelation_n to_o take_v up_o arm_n against_o their_o prince_n or_o to_o destroy_v all_o they_o meet_v which_o be_v no_o unheard_a of_o thing_n other_o may_v not_o go_v so_o far_o but_o may_v have_v revelation_n of_o the_o unlawfulness_n of_o kingly_a government_n other_o may_v pretend_v revelation_n of_o a_o new_a gospel_n and_o a_o more_o spiritual_a dispensation_n than_o have_v be_v yet_o in_o the_o world_n as_o the_o mendicant_a friar_n do_v 2._o whether_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v all_o such_o who_o say_v they_o have_v divine_a revelation_n or_o whether_o person_n may_v not_o be_v deceive_v in_o think_v they_o have_v revelation_n when_o they_o be_v only_a delusion_n of_o their_o own_o fancy_n or_o the_o devil_n if_o not_o then_o every_o one_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v who_o pretend_v to_o these_o thing_n and_o then_o all_o folly_n and_o contradiction_n must_v be_v fwallow_v which_o man_n say_v they_o have_v by_o immediate_a revelation_n and_o every_o fanatic_a must_v be_v believe_v to_o have_v divine_a revelation_n who_o believe_v himself_o though_o he_o be_v only_o delude_v by_o his_o own_o imagination_n or_o become_v enthusiastical_a by_o the_o power_n of_o a_o disease_n in_o his_o head_n or_o some_o great_a heat_n in_o his_o blood_n 3._o whether_o there_o must_v not_o be_v some_o certain_a rule_n establish_v whereby_o all_o person_n and_o even_o competent_a authority_n itself_o must_v proceed_v in_o judge_v these_o pretence_n to_o revelation_n whether_o they_o be_v true_a or_o false_a for_o if_o they_o proceed_v without_o rule_n they_o must_v either_o be_v inspire_v too_o or_o else_o must_v receive_v all_o who_o pretend_v to_o divine_a revelation_n if_o there_o be_v any_o certain_a rule_n whereby_o the_o revelation_n be_v to_o be_v judge_v then_o if_o any_o person_n receive_v any_o revelation_n against_o those_o rule_n whether_o be_v other_o person_n bind_v to_o follow_v their_o judgement_n against_o those_o rule_n 4._o whether_o there_o can_v be_v any_o more_o certain_a rule_n of_o judge_v than_o that_o two_o thing_n evident_o contradictory_n to_o each_o other_o can_v both_o come_v from_o divine_a revelation_n for_o then_o god_n must_v contradict_v himself_o which_o be_v impossible_a to_o be_v suppose_v and_o will_v overthrow_v the_o faith_n of_o any_o divine_a revelation_n and_o this_o be_v the_o plain_a case_n of_o the_o revelation_n make_v to_o two_o famous_a saint_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n s._n brigitt_n and_o s._n catharine_n to_o one_o it_o be_v reveal_v that_o the_o b._n virgin_n be_v conceive_v with_o original_a sin_n to_o the_o other_o that_o she_o be_v not_o both_o these_o have_v competent_a authority_n for_o they_o be_v both_o canonize_v for_o saint_n by_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o their_o revelation_n approve_v and_o therefore_o according_a to_o i._o w._n neither_o of_o they_o be_v fanatic_n though_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o one_o of_o their_o revelation_n be_v false_a for_o either_o god_n must_v contradict_v himself_o or_o one_o of_o these_o must_v be_v deceive_v or_o go_v about_o to_o deceive_v and_o what_o great_a fanaticism_n can_v there_o be_v than_o that_o be_v if_o one_o of_o these_o have_v only_o some_o fanatic_a enthusiasm_n and_o the_o other_o divine_a revelation_n then_o competent_a authority_n and_o submission_n to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o a_o rule_n to_o judge_v fanaticism_n by_o for_o those_o be_v equal_a in_o both_o of_o they_o 5._o whether_o there_o be_v a_o equal_a reason_n to_o look_v for_o revelation_n now_o as_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o our_o saviour_n and_o his_o apostle_n or_o whether_o god_n communicate_v revelation_n to_o no_o other_o end_n but_o to_o please_v and_o gratify_v some_o enthusiastical_a temper_n and_o what_o shall_v be_v the_o reason_n he_o shall_v do_v it_o more_o now_o than_o in_o the_o age_n wherein_o revelation_n be_v more_o necessary_a in_o those_o time_n god_n reveal_v his_o mind_n to_o man_n but_o it_o be_v for_o the_o benefit_n of_o other_o when_o he_o send_v they_o upon_o particular_a message_n as_o the_o prophet_n or_o make_v know_v some_o future_a event_n to_o they_o of_o great_a importance_n to_o the_o church_n as_o the_o come_n of_o the_o messiah_n etc._n etc._n or_o inspire_a they_o to_o deliver_v weighty_a doctrine_n to_o the_o world_n as_o he_o do_v both_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n why_o shall_v we_o think_v that_o god_n now_o when_o the_o revelation_n of_o these_o holy_a and_o inspire_a person_n be_v upon_o record_n and_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o his_o church_n be_v contain_v therein_o shall_v vary_v this_o method_n of_o he_o and_o entertain_v some_o melancholy_a and_o retire_a woman_n or_o other_o enthusiastical_a person_n with_o vision_n and_o revelation_n of_o no_o use_n to_o his_o church_n 6._o whether_o god_n do_v ever_o inspire_v person_n with_o immediate_a revelation_n without_o give_v sufficient_a evidence_n of_o such_o inspiration_n for_o if_o he_o do_v it_o be_v to_o leave_v man_n under_o a_o temptation_n to_o infidelity_n without_o mean_n to_o withstand_v it_o if_o he_o do_v not_o than_o we_o have_v reason_n to_o examine_v the_o evidence_n before_o we_o believe_v the_o revelation_n the_o evidence_n god_n give_v of_o old_a be_v either_o the_o prophecy_n of_o a_o succession_n of_o prophet_n by_o one_o who_o commission_n be_v attest_v by_o great_a miracle_n as_o moses_n who_o tell_v the_o israelite_n they_o be_v to_o expect_v prophet_n and_o lay_v down_o rule_n to_o judge_v of_o they_o by_o or_o else_o by_o miracle_n wrought_v by_o themselves_o as_o by_o the_o apostle_n who_o our_o lord_n send_v abroad_o to_o declare_v his_o will_n to_o the_o world_n and_o where_o these_o be_v not_o what_o reason_n be_v there_o to_o receive_v any_o new_a revelation_n as_o from_o god_n especial_o when_o the_o main_a prediction_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v of_o false_a prophet_n and_o false_a miracle_n 7._o whether_o the_o revelation_n of_o their_o pretend_a saint_n be_v countenance_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o their_o church_n be_v equal_o receive_v among_o they_o with_o the_o revelation_n contain_v in_o scripture_n if_o they_o be_v than_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v equal_a reverence_n pay_v to_o they_o and_o they_o ought_v to_o read_v they_o as_o scripture_n to_o cite_v their_o authority_n as_o divine_v and_o to_o believe_v they_o as_o infallible_a
sophister_n one_o now_o come_v forth_o in_o the_o habit_n of_o a_o grave_a divine_a who_o i_o shall_v treat_v with_o the_o respect_n due_a to_o his_o appearance_n of_o modesty_n and_o civility_n i_o pass_v by_o therefore_o all_o those_o unhandsome_a reflection_n in_o his_o preface_n which_o i_o have_v not_o already_o answer_v in_o i_o and_o come_v immediate_o to_o the_o main_a controversy_n between_o we_o which_o i_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v of_o so_o great_a importance_n as_o to_o deserve_v a_o sober_a debate_n and_o the_o controversy_n in_o short_a be_v this_o whether_o protestant_n who_o reject_v the_o roman_a church_n authority_n and_o infallibility_n can_v have_v any_o sufficient_a foundation_n to_o build_v their_o faith_n upon_o this_o we_o affirm_v and_o those_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n confident_o deny_v and_o on_o this_o account_n do_v charge_n we_o with_o the_o want_n of_o principle_n i._n e._n sufficient_a ground_n for_o our_o faith_n but_o this_o may_v be_v understand_v two_o way_n 1._o that_o we_o can_v have_v no_o certainty_n of_o our_o faith_n as_o christian_n without_o their_o infallibility_n 2._o or_o that_o we_o can_v have_v no_o certainty_n of_o our_o faith_n as_o protestant_n i_o e._n in_o the_o matter_n in_o debate_n between_o their_o church_n and_o we_o these_o two_o ought_v careful_o to_o be_v distinguish_v from_o each_o other_o and_o although_o the_o principle_n i_o lay_v down_o do_v reach_n to_o both_o these_o yet_o that_o they_o be_v chief_o intend_v for_o the_o former_a will_v appear_v by_o the_o occasion_n of_o add_v they_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o answer_n there_o give_v the_o occasion_n be_v my_o adversary_n call_v for_o ground_n and_o principle_n upon_o which_o i_o there_o say_v that_o i_o will_v give_v a_o account_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o protestant_n in_o the_o way_n of_o principle_n ed._n and_o of_o the_o reason_n of_o our_o reject_v their_o imposition_n the_o first_o i_o undertake_v on_o two_o account_n 1._o to_o show_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n authority_n and_o infallibility_n can_v be_v the_o foundation_n of_o christian_a faith_n and_o so_o we_o may_v be_v very_o good_a christian_n without_o have_v any_o thing_n to_o do_v with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 2._o that_o this_o may_v serve_v as_o a_o sufficient_a answer_n to_o a_o book_n entitle_v protestant_n without_o principle_n which_o be_v in_o some_o part_n of_o it_o direct_v against_o i_o i_o have_v reason_n not_o only_o to_o lay_v down_o those_o principle_n b●t_o to_o do_v it_o in_o such_o a_o manner_n as_o do_v most_o direct_o overthrow_v the_o principle_n of_o that_o book_n which_o be_v only_o intimate_v there_o i_o must_v now_o to_o make_v my_o proceed_n more_o clear_a and_o evident_a produce_v those_o assertion_n of_o e._n w._n for_o which_o mine_n be_v intend_v 1._o in_o the_o first_o chapter_n he_o design_n to_o prove_v that_o all_o man_n must_v be_v infallible_a in_o the_o assent_n they_o give_v to_o matter_n of_o faith_n for_o say_v he_o if_o they_o disow_v such_o infallible_a believer_n they_o must_v joint_o deny_v all_o infallible_a faith_n 17._o and_o a_o little_a after_o a_o infallible_a verity_n reveal_v to_o we_o forcible_o require_v a_o answerable_a and_o correspondent_a infallible_a faith_n in_o we_o and_o therefore_o he_o assert_v a_o subjective_a infallibility_n in_o true_a believer_n and_o from_o hence_o he_o prove_v the_o necessity_n of_o infallible_a teacher_n 18._o for_o infallible_a believer_n and_o infallible_a teacher_n 19_o he_o say_v seem_v near_o correlative_n in_o the_o second_o chapter_n he_o say_v he_o that_o hear_v a_o infallible_a teacher_n have_v the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n 20._o and_o he_o that_o hear_v not_o a_o infallible_a teacher_n want_v this_o spirit_n of_o truth_n by_o which_o he_o do_v not_o mean_v a_o infallible_a revealer_n of_o the_o doctrine_n at_o first_o but_o the_o immediate_a teacher_n of_o the_o reveal_v doctrine_n 21._o for_o say_v he_o no_o man_n can_v be_v a_o heretic_n that_o deny_v the_o objective_a verity_n reveal_v in_o god_n word_n unless_o he_o be_v sure_a that_o his_o teacher_n reveal_v those_o verity_n infallible_o 22._o he_o propose_v the_o objection_n of_o a_o simplician_n as_o he_o call_v he_o that_o he_o build_v his_o faith_n and_o religion_n not_o on_o any_o preacher_n talk_v but_o on_o the_o objective_a verity_n reveal_v in_o scripture_n to_o which_o he_o answer_v that_o unless_o he_o first_o learn_v of_o some_o infallible_a oracle_n the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n in_o controvert_v place_n he_o can_v never_o arrive_v to_o the_o depth_n of_o god_n true_a meaning_n or_o derive_v infallible_a faith_n from_o those_o objective_n reveal_v verity_n he_o yet_o far_a assert_n 23._o that_o every_o catechist_n or_o preacher_n that_o have_v a_o lawful_a mission_n and_o be_v send_v by_o the_o infallible_a church_n to_o teach_v christ_n sacred_a doctrine_n if_o he_o preach_v that_o doctrine_n which_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n approve_v of_o be_v then_o under_o that_o notion_n of_o a_o member_n conjoin_v with_o a_o infallible_a church_n infallible_a in_o his_o teach_n and_o thence_o conclude_v 24._o that_o infallibility_n do_v accompany_v both_o teacher_n and_o hearer_n and_o from_o deny_v this_o infallibility_n 25._o he_o say_v follow_v a_o utter_a ruin_n of_o christian_a religion_n yea_o and_o of_o scripture_n too_o and_o afterward_o he_o go_v about_o to_o prove_v that_o no_o man_n can_v have_v any_o divine_a faith_n without_o infallibility_n in_o the_o proponent_n 43._o for_o faith_n he_o as_o long_o as_o the_o infallibility_n of_o a_o revelation_n stand_v remote_a from_o i_o for_o want_v of_o a_o undoubted_a application_n make_v by_o a_o infallible_a proponent_n it_o can_v no_o more_o transfuse_v certainty_n into_o faith_n than_o fire_n at_o a_o great_a distance_n warm_a this_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o the_o principle_n of_o that_o metaphysical_a wit_n but_o sure_o a_o man_n must_v have_v his_o brain_n well_o confound_v by_o school_n divinity_n and_o hard_a word_n before_o he_o can_v have_v common_a sense_n little_a enough_o to_o think_v he_o understand_v they_o but_o because_o i_o never_o love_v to_o spend_v time_n in_o confute_v a_o man_n who_o think_v himself_o the_o wise_a for_o speak_v thing_n which_o neither_o he_o nor_o any_o one_o else_o can_v understand_v i_o rather_o choose_v in_o as_o short_a a_o way_n as_o i_o can_v to_o put_v together_o such_o proposition_n as_o may_v give_v a_o account_n of_o christian_a faith_n without_o all_o this_o jargon_n about_o infallibility_n in_o order_n to_o this_o i_o first_o lay_v down_o the_o principle_n wherein_o all_o party_n be_v agree_v and_o then_o such_o proposition_n as_o i_o suppose_v will_v sufficient_o give_v a_o account_n of_o our_o faith_n without_o any_o necessity_n of_o such_o a_o infallibility_n as_o he_o make_v necessary_a for_o the_o foundation_n of_o it_o but_o for_o our_o clear_a proceed_v in_o a_o argument_n of_o this_o importance_n 2_o it_o will_v be_v necessary_a to_o state_n and_o fix_v the_o notion_n of_o infallibility_n before_o i_o come_v to_o particular_n infallibility_n for_o as_o it_o be_v use_v it_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o rare_a word_n for_o juggler_n in_o divinity_n to_o play_v trick_n with_o for_o sometime_o they_o apply_v it_o to_o the_o object_n that_o be_v believe_v and_o call_v that_o infallible_o true_a sometime_o to_o the_o subject_a capable_a of_o believe_v and_o say_v person_n ought_v to_o be_v infallible_o certain_a that_o what_o they_o believe_v be_v infallible_o true_a and_o sometime_o to_o the_o mean_n of_o convey_v that_o infallible_a truth_n to_o the_o faculty_n of_o man_n and_o these_o they_o say_v must_v be_v infallible_a or_o else_o there_o can_v be_v no_o infallible_a certainty_n of_o any_o thing_n as_o infallble_o true_a but_o the_o subtlety_n of_o these_o thing_n lie_v only_o in_o their_o obscurity_n and_o the_o school-man_n be_v spoil_v when_o his_o talk_n be_v bring_v down_o out_o of_o the_o cloud_n to_o common_a sense_n i_o will_v therefore_o try_v to_o bring_v these_o thing_n out_o of_o their_o term_n to_o a_o plain_a meaning_n and_o sure_o we_o may_v speak_v and_o understand_v each_o other_o in_o these_o matter_n without_o this_o doubtful_a term_n of_o infallibility_n for_o if_o it_o signify_v any_o thing_n we_o may_v make_v use_n of_o the_o thing_n it_o signify_v in_o stead_n of_o the_o word_n and_o by_o apply_v the_o thing_n signify_v by_o it_o to_o that_o which_o it_o be_v speak_v of_o we_o shall_v soon_o discern_v how_o just_o it_o be_v attribute_v to_o it_o infallibile_fw-la be_v that_o which_o can_v be_v deceive_v now_o if_o no_o one_o will_v say_v that_o a_o proposition_n can_v be_v deceive_v it_o be_v absurd_a to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v infallible_o true_a therefore_o the_o matter_n reveal_v consider_v as_o objective_a verity_n as_o our_o schoolman_n speak_v be_v not_o capable_a of_o
have_v reveal_v his_o will_n to_o we_o by_o any_o supernatural_a mean_n let_v this_o be_v grant_v say_v he_o from_o whence_o it_o follow_v that_o we_o have_v sufficient_a certainty_n of_o the_o principle_n of_o natural_a religion_n without_o any_o such_o thing_n as_o infallibility_n 2._o he_o yield_v that_o reason_n be_v to_o be_v judge_n concern_v divine_a revelation_n which_o appear_v by_o the_o next_o proposition_n nothing_o ought_v to_o be_v admit_v for_o divine_a revelation_n 4._o which_o overthrow_v the_o certainty_n of_o those_o principle_n which_o must_v be_v antecedent_o suppose_v to_o all_o divine_a revelation_n for_o that_o be_v to_o overthrow_v the_o mean_n whereby_o we_o be_v to_o judge_v concern_v the_o truth_n of_o any_o divine_a revelation_n of_o which_o he_o say_v let_v this_o also_o be_v grant_v 3._o he_o yield_v that_o the_o will_n of_o god_n may_v be_v sufficient_o declare_v to_o man_n by_o writing_n for_o he_o grant_v the_o ten_o proposition_n which_o be_v this_o if_o the_o will_n of_o god_n can_v be_v sufficient_o declare_v to_o man_n by_o writing_n 10._o it_o must_v either_o be_v because_o no_o writing_n can_v be_v intelligible_a enough_o for_o that_o end_n or_o that_o it_o can_v never_o be_v know_v to_o be_v write_v by_o man_n infallible_o assist_v the_o former_a be_v repugnant_a to_o common_a sense_n for_o word_n be_v equal_o capable_a of_o be_v understand_v speak_v or_o write_v the_o latter_a overthrow_v the_o possibility_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v know_v to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n this_o say_v he_o be_v grant_v 4._o he_o yield_v that_o the_o write_a will_n of_o god_n do_v contain_v all_o thing_n simple_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n for_o in_o his_o consideration_n of_o the_o 14._o proposition_n 15._o these_o be_v his_o word_n mean_a while_n as_o touch_v the_o perfection_n of_o holy_a scripture_n catholic_n now_o as_o the_o holy_a father_n ancient_o do_v grant_v that_o they_o contain_v all_o point_n which_o be_v simple_o necessary_a to_o be_v of_o all_o person_n believe_v for_o attain_v salvation_n 5._o he_o yield_v 52._o that_o no_o person_n be_v infallible_o certain_a of_o or_o in_o his_o faith_n because_o the_o proponent_n thereof_o be_v infallible_a unless_o he_o also_o certain_o know_v or_o have_v infallible_a evidence_n that_o he_o be_v infallible_a only_o he_o add_v that_o for_o beget_v a_o infallible_a assent_n to_o the_o thing_n propose_v it_o be_v sufficient_a if_o we_o have_v a_o infallible_a evidence_n either_o of_o the_o thing_n propose_v or_o of_o the_o proponent_n only_o which_o be_v all_o i_o desire_v as_o to_o this_o matter_n but_o he_o quarrel_n with_o i_o for_o say_v proposition_n 21._o it_o be_v necessary_a therefore_o in_o order_n to_o a_o infallible_a assent_n that_o every_o particular_a person_n be_v infallible_o assist_v in_o judge_v of_o the_o matter_n propose_v to_o be_v believe_v because_o say_v he_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o have_v a_o infallible_a evidence_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o thing_n propose_v i._n e._n from_o the_o internal_a principle_n that_o prove_v or_o demonstrate_v they_o but_o it_o be_v enough_o that_o he_o have_v a_o infallible_a or_o sufficient_o certain_a evidence_n only_o of_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o external_a proponent_n where_o there_o be_v two_o thing_n to_o be_v take_v notice_n of_o 1._o that_o by_o the_o matter_n propose_v to_o be_v believe_v he_o will_v seem_v to_o understand_v i_o only_o of_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v by_o virtue_n of_o any_o proponent_n suppose_v infallible_a whereas_o i_o mean_v it_o of_o all_o such_o thing_n to_o which_o a_o infallible_a assent_n be_v require_v and_o chief_o of_o that_o by_o which_o we_o be_v to_o believe_v the_o thing_n reveal_v as_o for_o instance_n that_o the_o church_n be_v infallible_a be_v in_o the_o first_o place_n to_o be_v believe_v upon_o their_o principle_n and_o either_o a_o infallible_a assent_n be_v require_v to_o this_o or_o not_o if_o not_o than_o infallibility_n be_v not_o necessary_a to_o faith_n if_o it_o be_v than_o this_o infallible_a assent_n must_v be_v build_v on_o a_o infallibility_n antecedent_n to_o that_o of_o the_o church_n and_o then_o my_o consequence_n necessary_o follow_v that_o the_o ground_n on_o which_o a_o necessity_n of_o some_o external_a infallible_a proponent_n be_v assert_v must_v rather_o make_v every_o particular_a person_n infallible_a if_o no_o divine_a faith_n can_v be_v without_o a_o infallible_a assent_n and_o so_o render_v any_o other_o infallibility_n useless_a 2._o that_o he_o explain_v infallible_a evidence_n by_o that_o which_o be_v sufficient_o certain_a which_o be_v mere_a shuffle_n for_o he_o know_v well_o enough_o that_o we_o contend_v for_o sufficient_o certain_a evidence_n as_o much_o as_o they_o our_o only_a question_n be_v about_o infallibility_n whether_o that_o be_v necessary_a or_o no_o if_o sufficient_o certain_a evidence_n will_v serve_v for_o the_o church_n infallibility_n why_o may_v it_o not_o for_o the_o scripture_n or_o any_o matter_n of_o faith_n contain_v therein_o if_o they_o mean_v no_o more_o by_o infallibility_n but_o sufficient_a certainty_n why_o do_v they_o make_v so_o great_a a_o noise_n about_o it_o as_o though_o there_o can_v be_v no_o faith_n and_o we_o no_o christian_n without_o infallibility_n when_o we_o all_o say_v that_o the_o matter_n of_o faith_n have_v sufficient_a certainty_n nay_o the_o high_a which_o such_o thing_n be_v capable_a of_o be_v infallible_a faith_n come_v to_o be_v sufficient_o certain_a only_o for_o all_o that_o i_o know_v a_o infallible_a pope_n may_v by_o such_o another_o explication_n become_v like_o one_o of_o we_o 6._o he_o yield_v that_o a_o right_a and_o save_a faith_n may_v be_v without_o any_o infallible_a assurance_n concern_v the_o church_n infallibility_n which_o he_o say_v 54._o be_v abundant_o declare_v by_o catholic_n writer_n i_o only_o desire_v to_o know_v why_o a_o like_a right_n and_o save_a faith_n may_v not_o be_v have_v concern_v the_o scripture_n without_o their_o church_n infallibility_n for_o from_o hence_o it_o follow_v that_o a_o infallible_a assent_n be_v not_o requisite_a to_o save_a faith_n direct_o contrary_a to_o my_o former_a adversary_n e._n w._n for_o one_o say_v it_o be_v necessary_a to_o faith_n and_o the_o other_o that_o it_o be_v not_o but_o above_o all_o how_o will_v he_o ever_o answer_v this_o to_o mr._n i._n s._n who_o have_v write_v a_o whole_a book_n purposely_o against_o this_o principle_n as_o impious_a and_o atheistical_a methinks_v this_o way_n of_o defend_v the_o main_a foundation_n of_o their_o faith_n by_o principle_n so_o direct_o contradict_v one_o another_o look_v a_o little_a scandalous_o and_o bring_v a_o odd_a suspicion_n upon_o their_o cause_n as_o if_o it_o be_v very_o hard_o to_o be_v make_v good_a when_o our_o adversary_n can_v agree_v by_o which_o of_o two_o quite_o contrary_a principle_n it_o be_v best_o be_v maintain_v 7._o he_o yield_v 56._o that_o the_o utmost_a assurance_n a_o man_n can_v have_v of_o the_o church_n infallibility_n be_v only_o moral_a but_o to_o make_v it_o up_o he_o call_v it_o a_o moral_a infallibility_n which_o how_o strange_o soever_o it_o sound_v yet_o his_o meaning_n be_v good_a for_o it_o be_v such_o a_o infallibility_n as_o be_v not_o infallibility_n have_v the_o dispute_n be_v thus_o long_o among_o we_o whether_o infallibility_n be_v necessary_a or_o no_o to_o faith_n and_o now_o at_o last_o one_o come_v and_o tell_v we_o yes_o sure_o a_o moral_a infallibility_n be_v necessary_a i_o have_v hear_v of_o a_o ho●_n dispute_v between_o two_o gentleman_n about_o transubstantiation_n very_a earnest_n they_o be_v on_o both_o side_n at_o last_o another_o fall_v into_o their_o company_n and_o ask_v they_o what_o it_o be_v they_o be_v about_o they_o tell_v he_o transubstantiation_n very_o well_o say_v he_o but_o i_o pray_v tell_v i_o what_o you_o mean_v by_o it_o one_o say_v it_o be_v stand_v at_o the_o eucharist_n and_o the_o other_o kneel_v much_o such_o another_o explication_n be_v this_o here_o of_o infallibility_n only_o this_o be_v somewhat_o worse_o for_o it_o be_v join_v two_o word_n together_o which_o destroy_v each_o other_o for_o if_o it_o be_v only_o moral_a certainty_n it_o be_v not_o infallible_a if_o it_o be_v infallible_a it_o can_v be_v bare_o moral_a i_o expect_v to_o hear_v short_o of_o a_o accidental_a transubstantiation_n a_o coordinate_a supremacy_n as_o well_o as_o a_o moral_a infallibility_n but_o we_o be_v to_o suppose_v that_o by_o infallibility_n he_o mean_v no_o more_o than_o certainty_n because_o he_o explain_v it_o by_o the_o certainty_n of_o universal_a tradition_n this_o be_v well_o enough_o if_o in_o the_o precedent_a page_n he_o have_v not_o say_v 55._o that_o a_o particular_a person_n may_v be_v infallible_a in_o the_o assent_n he_o give_v to_o some_o matter_n propose_v viz._n to_o this_o
that_o the_o church_n be_v infallible_a i_o will_v fain_o understand_v what_o this_o infallible_a assent_n be_v ground_v upon_o and_o if_o the_o evidence_n be_v only_o sufficient_o or_o moral_o infallible_a which_o be_v his_o own_o term_n how_o the_o assent_n which_o be_v build_v upon_o it_o come_v to_o be_v more_o than_o so_o it_o be_v very_o pleasant_a to_o observe_v how_o mr._n cressey_n and_o some_o other_o late_a writer_n of_o their_o church_n be_v perplex_v about_o this_o word_n infallibility_n as_o if_o they_o have_v a_o wolf_n by_o the_o ear_n they_o can_v tell_v how_o to_o hold_v it_o and_o they_o be_v afraid_a to_o let_v it_o go_v and_o very_o loath_a be_v be_v our_o n._n o._n to_o part_n with_o the_o sound_n of_o infallibility_n although_o his_o own_o concession_n perfect_o overthrow_v it_o as_o will_v yet_o further_o appear_v by_o this_o last_o viz._n 8._o that_o moral_a certainty_n be_v a_o sufficient_a foundation_n for_o faith_n this_o will_v appear_v by_o my_o 27._o 27._o proposition_n which_o be_v this_o the_o nature_n of_o certainty_n do_v receive_v several_a name_n either_o according_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o proof_n or_o the_o degree_n of_o the_o assent_n thus_o moral_a certainty_n may_v be_v so_o call_v either_o as_o it_o be_v oppose_v to_o mathematical_a evidence_n but_o imply_v a_o firm_a assent_n upon_o the_o high_a evidence_n that_o moral_a thing_n can_v receive_v or_o as_o it_o be_v oppose_v to_o a_o high_a degree_n of_o certainty_n in_o the_o same_o kind_n so_o moral_a certainty_n imply_v only_o great_a probability_n of_o one_o side_n than_o the_o other_o in_o the_o former_a sense_n we_o assert_v the_o certainty_n of_o christian_a faith_n to_o be_v moral_a but_o not_o only_o in_o the_o latter_a 67._o to_o which_o he_o say_v this_o principle_n be_v grant_v if_o import_v only_o that_o christian_n have_v or_o may_v have_v a_o sufficient_o certain_a and_o infallible_a evidence_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o their_o christianity_n whereby_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o though_o he_o use_v the_o term_n infallible_a yet_o he_o mean_v no_o more_o than_o i_o do_v or_o else_o he_o ought_v not_o to_o have_v bring_v that_o as_o a_o explication_n of_o my_o principle_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o it_o as_o in_o this_o controversy_n moral_a certainty_n be_v oppose_v to_o strict_a demonstration_n and_o infallibility_n but_o if_o he_o by_o infallibility_n mean_v only_o sufficient_a certainty_n i_o shall_v be_v content_a for_o quietness_n sake_n that_o he_o shall_v call_v it_o infallibility_n if_o he_o please_v and_o that_o he_o can_v mean_v no_o more_o by_o it_o appear_v not_o only_o by_o what_o he_o have_v say_v before_o but_o by_o what_o he_o say_v afterward_o in_o these_o word_n 94._o a_o natural_a or_o moral_a certainty_n though_o not_o such_o a_o one_o as_o can_v possible_o be_v false_a but_o which_o according_a to_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o the_o common_a manner_n and_o experience_n of_o man_n be_v not_o false_a be_v sufficient_a on_o which_o to_o ground_v such_o a_o faith_n as_o god_n require_v of_o we_o in_o respect_n of_o that_o certainty_n which_o can_v be_v derive_v from_o humane_a sense_n or_o reason_n and_o which_o serve_v for_o a_o introductive_a to_o the_o reliance_n of_o this_o our_o faith_n upon_o such_o revelation_n as_o be_v believe_v by_o we_o divine_a and_o which_o if_o divine_a we_o know_v be_v not_o possible_o fallible_a in_o respect_n of_o its_o rely_v on_o which_o revelation_n a_o infallible_a object_n and_o not_o for_o a_o infallible_a certainty_n as_o to_o the_o subject_n it_o be_v that_o this_o our_o faith_n be_v denominate_v a_o divine_a faith_n now_o this_o natural_a or_o moral_a certainty_n be_v think_v sufficient_a for_o the_o first_o rational_a introductive_a and_o security_n of_o our_o faith_n not_o only_o by_o the_o doctor_n in_o his_o 27._o principle_n but_o also_o by_o catholic_n divine_v in_o their_o discourse_n of_o the_o prudential_n motive_n very_o well_o say_v and_o i_o be_v a_o very_a disingenuous_a man_n if_o i_o shall_v not_o hearty_o thank_v he_o for_o so_o free_a a_o confession_n by_o which_o if_o i_o understand_v any_o thing_n he_o very_o fair_o give_v up_o the_o cause_n of_o infallibility_n as_o to_o the_o necessity_n of_o it_o in_o order_n to_o faith_n as_o will_v easy_o appear_v by_o the_o manage_n of_o it_o so_o far_o as_o i_o have_v be_v concern_v in_o it_o it_o be_v evident_a to_o any_o one_o that_o will_v cast_v a_o eye_n on_o the_o controversy_n of_o infallibility_n between_o the_o archbishop_n and_o his_o adversary_n that_o it_o be_v raise_v on_o this_o account_n because_o those_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n assert_v that_o the_o infallible_a testimony_n of_o the_o church_n be_v necessary_a in_o order_n to_o the_o believe_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o so_o much_o be_v endeavour_v to_o be_v defend_v by_o he_o who_o pretend_v to_o answer_v my_o lord_n of_o canterbury_n book_n who_o go_v upon_o this_o principle_n that_o this_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v with_o a_o divine_a faith_n and_o a_o divine_a faith_n must_v be_v build_v upon_o a_o infallible_a testimony_n the_o falsehood_n of_o which_o i_o at_o large_a show_v in_o the_o discourse_n of_o the_o resolution_n of_o faith_n since_o the_o publish_n whereof_o the_o metaphysical_a gentleman_n before_o mention_v pretend_v to_o answer_v that_o part_n of_o it_o which_o concern_v infallibility_n and_o moral_a certainty_n some_o of_o his_o assertion_n i_o have_v lay_v down_o already_o as_o contrary_a to_o this_o of_o n._n o._n as_o may_v be_v for_o he_o not_o only_a assert_n the_o necessity_n of_o infallibility_n for_o a_o foundation_n of_o christian_a faith_n but_o spend_v some_o chapter_n in_o ramble_a talk_n against_o moral_a certainty_n the_o title_n of_o one_o of_o which_o be_v 6._o faith_n only_o moral_o certain_a be_v no_o faith_n i_o desire_v n._n o._n and_o e._n w._n to_o agree_v better_a before_o they_o go_v abo●●_n to_o confute_v i_o and_o to_o what_o purpose_n should●_n trouble_v myself_o with_o answer_v a_o man_n who●_n principle_n the_o more_o ingenuous_a of_o their_o ow●_n party_n disown_n as_o well_o as_o we_o for_o not_o on●●_n n._n o._n here_o make_v moral_a certainty_n a_o sufficient_a ground_n for_o divine_a faith_n 134._o but_o the_o guide_n 1●_n controversy_n another_o of_o my_o adversary_n a●serts_n the_o same_o when_o he_o say_v and_o indeed_o from_o what_o be_v say_v former_o that_o a_o divine_a faith_n may_v be_v have_v by_o those_o who_o have_v have_v 〈◊〉_d extrinsical_a even_o moral_o infallible_a i_o see_v now_o from_o who_o n._n o._n learn_v these_o term_n motive_n thereof_o it_o follow_v that_o divine_a faith_n do_v not_o resolve_v into_o such_o motive_n either_o as_o the_o formal_a cause_n or_o always_o as_o the_o applicative_a introductive_a or_o condition_n of_o this_o divine_a faith_n and_o a_o little_a after_o 135._o that_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o such_o faith_n always_o shall_v have_v a_o external_a rational_o infallible_a ground_n or_o motive_n thereto_o whether_o church_n authority_n or_o any_o other_o on_o his_o part_n that_o so_o believe_v by_o these_o concession_n it_o appear_v that_o the_o cause_n of_o infallibility_n as_o far_o as_o it_o concern_v the_o necessity_n of_o it_o in_o order_n to_o faith_n be_v clear_o give_v up_o by_o these_o person_n and_o if_o other_o be_v still_o of_o another_o mind_n among_o they_o i_o leave_v they_o to_o dispute_v it_o among_o themselves_o thus_o far_o then_o we_o be_v agree_v 4._o i_o now_o come_v to_o consider_v where_o the_o controversy_n still_o remain_v down_o and_o why_o the_o rest_n of_o my_o principle_n may_v not_o pass_v as_o well_o as_o these_o in_o order_n to_o this_o i_o must_v by_o take_v a_o view_n of_o his_o several_a exception_n and_o answer_n draw_v together_o a_o scheme_n of_o those_o principle_n which_o he_o set_v up_o in_o opposition_n to_o i_o and_o if_o i_o do_v not_o very_o much_o mistake_v they_o may_v be_v reduce_v to_o these_o three_o 1._o that_o god_n have_v give_v a_o infallible_a assistance_n to_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n in_o all_o age_n of_o it_o for_o the_o direction_n of_o those_o who_o live_v in_o it_o 2._o that_o without_o this_o infallible_a assistance_n there_o can_v be_v no_o certainty_n of_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n 3._o that_o all_o the_o argument_n which_o overthrow_v the_o church_n infallibility_n do_v destroy_v the_o church_n authority_n these_o as_o far_o as_o i_o can_v perceive_v contain_v the_o whole_a force_n of_o his_o consideration_n and_o in_o the_o examination_n of_o these_o the_o remain_a discourse_n must_v be_v spend_v in_o which_o i_o shall_v have_v occasion_n to_o take_v notice_n of_o whatever_o be_v material_a in_o his_o book_n 1._o the_o main_a controversy_n be_v whether_o god_n have_v give_v a_o
divine_a grace_n assist_v he_o to_o find_v out_o in_o these_o write_n the_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n yet_o after_o all_o he_o can_v certain_o understand_v the_o meaning_n of_o they_o which_o to_o i_o appear_v so_o absurd_a and_o monstrous_a a_o doctrine_n so_o contrary_a to_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o design_n of_o christianity_n that_o if_o i_o have_v a_o mind_n to_o disparage_v it_o i_o will_v begin_v with_o this_o and_o end_n with_o transubstantiation_n for_o in_o earnest_a sir_n do_v not_o our_o saviour_n speak_v intelligible_o in_o matte●s_n of_o so_o great_a importance_n to_o the_o salvation_n of_o mankind_n do_v he_o not_o declare_v all_o that_o be_v necessary_a for_o that_o end_n in_o his_o many_o admirable_a discourse_n do_v not_o the_o evangelist_n record_v his_o word_n and_o action_n in_o writing_n and_o that_o as_o one_o of_o they_o say_v express_o that_o we_o may_v believe_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o christ_n 31._o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o that_o believe_v we_o may_v have_v life_n through_o his_o name_n and_o after_o all_o this_o can_v we_o understand_v so_o much_o as_o the_o common_a necessary_n to_o salvation_n by_o the_o great_a and_o most_o sincere_a endeavour_n for_o that_o end_n but_o it_o be_v time_n now_o to_o consider_v his_o exception_n against_o this_o principle_n which_o be_v these_o 1._o that_o god_n may_v reveal_v his_o mind_n so_o in_o scripture_n as_o that_o in_o many_o thing_n it_o may_v be_v clear_a only_o to_o some_o person_n more_o verse_v in_o the_o scripture_n 13._o and_o in_o the_o church_n traditional_a sense_n of_o they_o and_o more_o assist_v from_o above_o according_a to_o their_o employment_n which_o person_n he_o have_v appoint_v to_o instruct_v the_o rest_n but_o what_o be_v all_o this_o to_o our_o purpose_n our_o question_n be_v not_o about_o may_v be_v his_o and_o possibility_n of_o thing_n but_o it_o be_v take_v for_o grant_v on_o both_o side_n that_o god_n have_v reveal_v his_o mind_n in_o writing_n therefore_o he_o need_v not_o make_v the_o supposition_n of_o no_o write_n at_o all_o 14._o as_o he_o do_v afterward_o the_o question_n be_v whether_o these_o write_n be_v allow_v for_o divine_a revelation_n of_o the_o will_n of_o god_n he_o have_v express_v the_o necessary_n to_o salvation_n clear_o therein_o or_o not_o that_o god_n may_v deliver_v his_o mind_n obscure_o in_o many_o thing_n be_v no_o question_n nor_o that_o he_o may_v inspire_v person_n to_o unfold_v his_o mind_n where_o it_o be_v obscure_a but_o our_o question_n be_v whether_o or_o no_o these_o write_n be_v acknowledge_v to_o contain_v the_o will_n of_o god_n it_o be_v agreeable_a with_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o design_n and_o the_o wisdom_n and_o goodness_n of_o god_n for_o such_o write_n not_o to_o be_v capable_a of_o be_v understand_v in_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n by_o those_o who_o sincere_o endeavour_v to_o understand_v they_o but_o when_o i_o have_v express_o say_v thing_n necessary_a for_o salvation_n why_o do_v he_o avoid_v that_o which_o the_o dispute_n be_v about_o and_o only_o say_v many_o thing_n in_o stead_n of_o it_o i_o do_v not_o doubt_v but_o there_o be_v many_o difficult_a place_n of_o scripture_n as_o there_o must_v be_v in_o any_o ancient_a write_n pen_v in_o a_o idiom_n so_o very_o different_a from_o we_o but_o i_o never_o yet_o see_v one_o difficulty_n remove_v by_o the_o pretend_a infallible_a guide_n of_o the_o church_n all_o the_o help_n we_o have_v have_v have_v be_v from_o mere_a fallible_a man_n of_o excellent_a skill_n in_o language_n history_n and_o chronology_n and_o of_o a_o clear_a understanding_n and_o we_o shall_v be_v very_o unthankful_a not_o to_o acknowledge_v the_o great_a help_n we_o have_v have_v from_o they_o for_o understand_v the_o difficult_a place_n of_o scripture_n but_o for_o the_o infallible_a guide_n they_o have_v deal_v by_o the_o obscurity_n of_o scripture_n as_o the_o priest_n and_o the_o levi●e_n in_o our_o saviour_n parable_n do_v by_o the_o wound_a man_n 32._o they_o have_v fair_o pass_v they_o by_o and_o take_v no_o care_n of_o they_o if_o these_o guide_n do_v believe_v themselves_o infallible_a they_o have_v make_v the_o least_o use_n of_o their_o talon_n that_o ever_o man_n do_v they_o have_v lay_v it_o up_o in_o a_o napkin_n and_o bury_v it_o in_o the_o earth_n for_o nothing_o of_o it_o ever_o appear_v above_o ground_n how_o can_v they_o have_v oblige_v the_o world_n more_o nay_o it_o have_v be_v necessary_a to_o have_v do_v it_o for_o the_o use_n of_o their_o gift_n than_o to_o have_v give_v a_o infallible_a sense_n of_o all_o controvert_v place_n and_o then_o there_o have_v be_v but_o one_o dispute_n leave_v whether_o they_o be_v infallible_a or_o not_o but_o now_o suppose_v we_o believe_v their_o infallibility_n we_o be_v still_o as_o far_o to_o seek_v for_o the_o meaning_n of_o many_o difficult_a place_n and_o suppose_v god_n have_v once_o bestow_v this_o gift_n of_o infallibility_n upon_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n he_o may_v most_o just_o deprive_v they_o of_o it_o because_o of_o the_o no_o use_n they_o have_v make_v of_o it_o and_o we_o may_v have_v great_a reason_n to_o believe_v so_o from_o our_o saviour_n word_n 29._o to_o he_o that_o have_v shall_v be_v give_v but_o from_o he_o that_o have_v not_o shall_v be_v take_v away_o even_o that_o which_o he_o have_v so_o that_o not_o make_v use_n of_o this_o talon_n of_o infallibility_n give_v we_o just_a reason_n to_o question_n whether_o god_n continue_v it_o suppose_v he_o have_v once_o give_v it_o to_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n since_o the_o apostle_n day_n which_o i_o see_v no_o reason_n to_o believe_v 2._o his_o next_o exception_n be_v from_o a_o say_n of_o dr._n field_n 14._o who_o he_o say_v seem_v to_o advance_v a_o contrary_a principle_n in_o his_o preface_n to_o his_o book_n of_o the_o church_n but_o o_o the_o mischief_n of_o common-place-book_n which_o make_v man_n write_v what_o they_o find_v and_o not_o what_o be_v to_o their_o purpose_n for_o after_o all_o dr._n field_n do_v but_o seem_v to_o advance_v another_o principle_n in_o his_o opinion_n and_o do_v not_o so_o much_o as_o seem_v to_o do_v it_o in_o i_o for_o that_o learned_a and_o judicious_a writer_n set_v himself_o purposely_o to_o disprove_v the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o four_o book_n and_o be_v it_o probable_a that_o any_o man_n of_o common_a understanding_n will_v assert_v that_o in_o his_o preface_n which_o he_o have_v disprove_v in_o his_o book_n it_o be_v a_o know_a distinction_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n of_o the_o church_n virtual_a representative_a and_o essential_a by_o the_o two_o first_o be_v mean_v pope_n and_o council_n and_o of_o these_o two_o dr._n field_n say_v 350._o that_o they_o may_v err_v in_o matter_n of_o great_a consequence_n yet_o these_o be_v n._n oh_o infallible_a guide_n who_o conduct_n he_o suppose_v man_n oblige_v to_o follow_v and_o to_o yield_v their_o internal_a assent_n to_o concern_v the_o essential_a church_n he_o say_v 2_o that_o it_o either_o comprehend_v all_o the_o faithful_a that_o be_v and_o have_v be_v since_o christ_n appear_v in_o the_o flesh_n and_o then_o he_o say_v it_o be_v absolute_o free_a from_o all_o error_n and_o ignorance_n of_o divine_a thing_n that_o be_v to_o be_v know_v by_o revelation_n or_o as_o it_o comprehend_v only_o all_o those_o believer_n that_o be_v and_o have_v be_v since_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o in_o this_o sense_n he_o say_v the_o whole_a church_n may_v be_v ignorant_a in_o sundry_a thing_n which_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n but_o he_o think_v it_o impossible_a for_o the_o whole_a church_n to_o err_v in_o anything_o of_o this_o nature_n but_o in_o thing_n that_o can_v be_v clear_o deduce_v from_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o word_n of_o divine_a and_o heavenly_a truth_n we_o think_v it_o possible_a that_o all_o that_o have_v write_v of_o such_o thing_n may_v err_v and_o be_v deceive_v but_o if_o the_o church_n be_v take_v only_o as_o it_o comprehend_v the_o believer_n that_o now_o be_v and_o present_o live_v in_o the_o world_n he_o say_v it_o be_v certain_a and_o agree_v upon_o that_o in_o thing_n necessary_a to_o be_v know_v and_o believe_v express_o and_o distinct_o it_o never_o be_v ignorant_a much_o less_o do_v err_v yea_o in_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o absolute_o necessary_a to_o be_v know_v and_o believe_v express_o and_o distinct_o we_o constant_o believe_v that_o this_o church_n can_v never_o err_v nor_o doubt_v pertinacious_o but_o that_o there_o shall_v ever_o be_v some_o find_v ready_a to_o embrace_v the_o truth_n if_o it_o be_v manifest_v to_o they_o and_o such_o as_o shall_v not_o whole_o neglect_v the_o
search_n and_o enquiry_n after_o it_o as_o time_n and_o mean_n give_v leave_v but_o if_o we_o mean_v by_o a_o church_n any_o particular_a church_n 5._o he_o determine_v that_o particular_a man_n and_o church_n may_v err_v damnable_o because_o notwithstanding_o other_o may_v worship_n god_n aright_o but_o that_o the_o whole_a church_n at_o one_o time_n can_v so_o err_v for_o that_o then_o the_o church_n shall_v cease_v utter_o for_o a_o time_n and_o so_o not_o be_v catholic_n be_v not_o at_o all_o time_n and_o christ_n shall_v sometime_o be_v without_o a_o church_n yet_o that_o error_n not_o prejudice_v the_o salvation_n of_o they_o that_o err_v may_v be_v find_v in_o the_o church_n that_o be_v at_o one_o time_n in_o the_o world_n we_o make_v no_o doubt_n only_o the_o symbolical_a and_o catholic_n which_o be_v and_o be_v be_v whole_o free_a from_o error_n which_o several_a expression_n amount_v to_o no_o more_o than_o this_o that_o there_o will_v be_v always_o some_o true_a christian_n in_o the_o world_n but_o what_o be_v this_o to_o infallible_a teacher_n and_o guide_n in_o a_o church_n that_o pretend_v to_o be_v catholic_n against_o all_o the_o sense_n and_o reason_n in_o the_o world_n and_o be_v it_o now_o imaginable_a after_o all_o this_o that_o dr._n field_n shall_v make_v any_o particular_a church_n infallible_a no_o all_o that_o he_o mean_v in_o his_o preface_n be_v this_o that_o among_o all_o the_o society_n of_o man_n person_n who_o have_v not_o leisure_n or_o capacity_n to_o examine_v particular_a controversy_n ought_v diligent_o to_o search_v which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n and_o have_v do_v this_o to_o embrace_v her_o communion_n follow_v her_o direction_n and_o rest_n in_o her_o judgement_n i.e._n suppose_v a_o man_n by_o that_o very_a book_n of_o dr._n field_n shall_v be_v convince_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v a_o very_a corrupt_a and_o tyrannical_a church_n and_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v a_o sound_n and_o good_a church_n which_o be_v the_o design_n of_o his_o write_n it_o he_o be_v thus_o far_o satisfy_v aught_o to_o embrace_v the_o communion_n of_o this_o church_n and_o so_o follow_v her_o direction_n and_o rest_n in_o her_o judgement_n so_o as_o not_o to_o forsake_v her_o communion_n for_o any_o cavil_n that_o be_v raise_v about_o particular_a controversy_n of_o which_o he_o be_v not_o a_o capable_a judge_n and_o do_v this_o make_v the_o church_n of_o england_n infallible_a if_o we_o say_v that_o a_o man_n be_v first_o satisfy_v of_o the_o skill_n and_o integrity_n of_o a_o lawyer_n aught_o to_o follow_v his_o direction_n and_o rest_n in_o his_o judgement_n do_v this_o make_v that_o lawyer_n infallible_a so_o we_o say_v here_o the_o rest_a in_o the_o judgement_n of_o a_o church_n of_o who_o integrity_n we_o have_v assurance_n beforehand_o imply_v only_o the_o supposition_n of_o so_o much_o honesty_n and_o skill_n in_o a_o church_n as_o may_v over-rule_v the_o judgement_n of_o person_n who_o either_o have_v not_o leisure_n or_o capacity_n to_o understand_v particular_a controversy_n which_o require_v skill_n in_o language_n search_v into_o the_o father_n and_o late_a writer_n on_o both_o side_n if_o we_o say_v that_o unlearned_a person_n ought_v in_o such_o thing_n to_o trust_v the_o learned_a who_o integrity_n they_o have_v no_o ground_n to_o suspect_v this_o do_v not_o certain_o make_v the_o more_o learned_a infallible_a but_o we_o may_v rest_v in_o the_o judgement_n of_o those_o who_o we_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o suspect_v though_o we_o believe_v they_o not_o to_o be_v infallible_a and_o it_o be_v the_o former_a dr._n field_n mean_v and_o by_o no_o mean_n any_o infallibility_n unless_o he_o plain_o contradict_v himself_o 3._o he_o except_v 15._o that_o this_o bring_v in_o a_o inerrability_n of_o every_o particular_a christian_a in_o all_o point_v necessary_a if_o such_o christian_n will_v that_o be_v ●f_o only_o they_o shall_v sincere_o endeavour_v to_o know_v the_o meaning_n of_o they_o the_o force_n of_o this_o argument_n will_v be_v easy_o discern_v if_o we_o put_v another_o parallel_n to_o it_o viz._n that_o they_o who_o assert_v from_o scripture_n the_o assistance_n of_o divine_a grace_n to_o the_o sincere_a endeavour_n of_o man_n do_v make_v all_o man_n impeccable_a if_o they_o will_v as_o well_o as_o those_o who_o assert_v that_o god_n will_v not_o be_v want_v in_o necessary_n to_o salvation_n to_o those_o who_o sincere_o endeavour_v to_o know_v they_o make_v all_o such_o man_n so_o far_o infallible_a if_o they_o will_n if_o any_o one_o thing_n be_v plain_a in_o scripture_n the_o goodness_n of_o god_n be_v and_o who_o can_v believe_v that_o and_o yet_o think_v that_o he_o will_v suffer_v those_o who_o sincere_o endeavour_v to_o know_v what_o be_v necessary_a to_o their_o salvation_n not_o to_o understand_v it_o but_o beside_o how_o often_o do_v the_o scripture_n promise_v a_o great_a degree_n of_o knowledge_n to_o the_o meek_a and_o humble_a 9_o to_o the_o diligent_a and_o industrious_a 5._o to_o those_o that_o ask_v and_o seek_v wisdom_n from_o he_o 13._o to_o those_o that_o do_v the_o will_n of_o god_n to_o who_o our_o saviour_n have_v express_o promise_v 17._o that_o they_o shall_v know_v of_o his_o doctrine_n whether_o it_o be_v of_o god_n or_o no_o and_o if_o this_o be_v the_o inerrability_n he_o mean_v he_o see_v what_o ground_n we_o have_v to_o assert_v it_o but_o we_o understand_v not_o by_o it_o that_o such_o person_n can_v err_v in_o their_o judgement_n about_o what_o thing_n be_v necessary_a and_o what_o not_o nor_o that_o they_o can_v err_v in_o other_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o so_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n but_o that_o god_n goodness_n be_v so_o great_a and_o his_o promise_n so_o plain_a and_o his_o word_n so_o clear_a in_o necessary_a thing_n that_o no_o one_o who_o sincere_o endeavour_v to_o know_v they_o shall_v ever_o miss_v of_o salvation_n and_o if_o such_o a_o infallibility_n will_v satisfy_v they_o we_o do_v not_o deny_v it_o to_o pope_n themselves_o or_o other_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n on_o condition_n they_o do_v not_o think_v themselves_o infallible_a beyond_o these_o bound_n for_o they_o be_v only_o the_o meek_a and_o humble_a who_o god_n have_v promise_v to_o teach_v his_o way_n and_o not_o such_o who_o will_v be_v infallible_a whether_o god_n will_v or_o no._n his_o other_o exception_n from_o this_o principle_n destroy_v church-authority_n from_o the_o parity_n of_o reason_n for_o church_n governor_n and_o the_o controvert_v place_n of_o scripture_n shall_v be_v consider_v afterward_o 2._o i_o now_o come_v to_o examine_v what_o certainty_n there_o be_v for_o this_o infallibility_n 6._o here_o i_o shall_v lay_v down_o some_o principle_n of_o common_a reason_n examine_v by_o which_o we_o may_v better_o understand_v the_o force_n of_o his_o argument_n 1._o that_o the_o proof_n ought_v always_o to_o be_v more_o evident_a than_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v to_o be_v prove_v by_o it_o for_o otherwise_o it_o be_v of_o no_o advantage_n to_o the_o proof_n of_o it_o if_o it_o have_v but_o the_o same_o degree_n of_o evidence_n but_o be_v a_o great_a prejudice_n to_o it_o if_o it_o have_v less_o so_o that_o if_o the_o proof_n of_o infallibility_n be_v equal_o obscure_a and_o difficult_a with_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v by_o virtue_n of_o it_o this_o infallibility_n be_v of_o no_o use_n but_o if_o they_o be_v less_o evident_a the_o pretence_n of_o it_o be_v both_o very_o ridiculous_a and_o prejudicial_a to_o the_o christian_a faith_n 2._o the_o great_a concernment_n any_o law_n be_v of_o and_o the_o great_a danger_n in_o mistake_v the_o meaning_n of_o it_o the_o more_o plain_a and_o distinct_a ought_v the_o term_n of_o that_o law_n to_o be_v as_o a_o law_n about_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o crown_n ought_v to_o be_v frame_v with_o all_o the_o clearness_n and_o distinctness_n imaginable_a because_o the_o peace_n and_o security_n of_o a_o nation_n depend_v upon_o it_o so_o in_o case_n christ_n have_v appoint_v any_o successor_n in_o the_o government_n of_o his_o church_n or_o entail_v infallibility_n upon_o the_o guide_n of_o it_o this_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o such_o infinite_a concernment_n to_o the_o whole_a church_n it_o be_v most_o unreasonable_a to_o conceive_v that_o whatever_o other_o part_n of_o his_o will_n be_v obscure_a those_o which_o relate_v to_o the_o matter_n of_o succession_n and_o infallibility_n shall_v be_v so_o but_o rather_o so_o plain_a that_o no_o one_o can_v miss_v of_o understand_v they_o because_o the_o weight_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n depend_v upon_o these_o two_o and_o it_o be_v so_o horrible_a a_o presumption_n in_o any_o to_o pretend_v to_o they_o in_o case_n they_o have_v no_o right_n to_o they_o and_o the_o danger_n so_o great_a in_o rely_v upon_o they_o if_o there_o be_v
add_v to_o it_o but_o since_o he_o produce_v no_o other_o proof_n for_o it_o i_o must_v consider_v how_o he_o go_v about_o to_o weaken_v i_o against_o it_o two_o thing_n i_o insist_v upon_o against_o such_o a_o pretence_n of_o infallibility_n viz._n that_o such_o a_o pretence_n imply_v a_o infallible_a assistance_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n there_o be_v but_o two_o way_n of_o prove_v it_o either_o 1._o by_o such_o miracle_n as_o the_o apostle_n wrought_v to_o attest_v their_o infallibility_n or_o 2._o by_o those_o scripture_n from_o whence_o this_o infallibility_n be_v derive_v concern_v both_o these_o i_o lay_v down_o two_o proposition_n 1._o concern_v the_o proof_n by_o miracle_n the_o proposition_n be_v this_o there_o can_v be_v no_o more_o intolerable_a usurpation_n on_o the_o faith_n of_o christian_n than_o for_o any_o person_n or_o society_n of_o man_n to_o pretend_v to_o a_o assistance_n as_o infallible_a in_o what_o they_o propose_v 16_o as_o be_v in_o christ_n or_o his_o apostle_n without_o give_v a_o equal_a degree_n of_o evidence_n that_o they_o be_v so_o assist_v as_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n do_v viz._n by_o miracle_n as_o great_a public_a and_o convince_a as_o they_o be_v by_o which_o i_o mean_v such_o as_o be_v wrought_v by_o those_o very_a person_n who_o challenge_v this_o infallibility_n and_o with_o a_o design_n for_o the_o conviction_n of_o those_o who_o do_v not_o believe_v it_o to_o this_o he_o answer_v 27._o 1._o that_o i_o be_o equal_o oblige_v to_o produce_v miracle_n for_o the_o church_n infallibility_n in_o fundamental_o which_o i_o have_v assert_v in_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o archbishop_n but_o this_o admit_v a_o very_a easy_a answer_n for_o when_o i_o speak_v of_o infallibility_n in_o fundamental_o i_o there_o declare_v that_o i_o mean_v no_o more_o by_o it_o than_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v always_o a_o number_n of_o true_a christian_n in_o the_o world_n and_o what_o necessity_n be_v there_o now_o of_o miracle_n for_o man_n to_o believe_v since_o they_o receive_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n upon_o those_o miracle_n by_o which_o it_o be_v at_o first_o attest_v neither_o be_v there_o any_o need_n of_o miracle_n to_o show_v that_o any_o number_n of_o man_n be_v not_o guilty_a of_o a_o actual_a error_n in_o what_o they_o believe_v suppose_v they_o declare_v to_o believe_v only_o on_o the_o account_n of_o that_o divine_a revelation_n which_o be_v own_v by_o christian_n for_o in_o this_o case_n the_o trial_n of_o doctrine_n be_v to_o be_v by_o scripture_n but_o in_o case_n any_o person_n challenge_v a_o infallibility_n to_o themselves_o antecedent_o to_o the_o belief_n of_o scripture_n and_o by_o virtue_n of_o which_o they_o say_v man_n must_v believe_v the_o scripture_n than_o i_o say_v such_o person_n be_v equal_o bind_v to_o prove_v their_o infallibility_n by_o miracle_n as_o the_o apostle_n be_v 2._o not_o rest_v in_o this_o he_o proceed_v to_o another_o answer_n 29._o the_o sum_n of_o which_o be_v that_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n not_o be_v so_o large_a or_o so_o high_a as_o the_o apostle_n but_o consist_v only_o in_o the_o infallible_a delivery_n of_o the_o same_o doctrine_n there_o be_v no_o necessity_n of_o miracle_n in_o the_o present_a church_n to_o this_o i_o answer_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v new_a two_o way_n 1._o in_o respect_n of_o the_o matter_n contain_v in_o it_o and_o so_o it_o be_v new_a only_o when_o it_o be_v first_o reveal_v 2._o in_o respect_n of_o the_o person_n who_o be_v to_o believe_v it_o so_o it_o be_v new_a in_o every_o age_n to_o those_o who_o be_v first_o bring_v to_o believe_v it_o now_o the_o apostle_n have_v their_o infallibility_n attest_v by_o miracle_n not_o bare_o with_o a_o respect_n to_o the_o revelation_n of_o new_a matter_n for_o than_o none_o will_v have_v need_v miracle_n but_o christ_n himself_o or_o the_o apostle_n that_o make_v the_o first_o sermon_n for_o afterward_o the_o matter_n be_v not_o new_a but_o the_o necessity_n of_o miracle_n be_v to_o give_v a_o sufficient_a motive_n to_o believe_v to_o all_o those_o to_o who_o the_o gospel_n be_v propose_v and_o therefore_o miracle_n be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o a_o sign_n to_o unbeliever_n 22._o for_o by_o these_o unbeliever_n be_v convince_v that_o there_o be_v sufficient_a ground_n for_o receive_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n on_o the_o authority_n of_o those_o who_o deliver_v it_o 4._o god_n himself_o bear_v they_o witness_n with_o divers_a miracle_n and_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n suppose_v then_o any_o of_o the_o apostle_n after_o their_o first_o preach_v continue_v only_o to_o inculcate_v the_o same_o doctrine_n for_o the_o conversion_n of_o more_o unbeliever_n in_o this_o case_n the_o evidence_n of_o miracle_n be_v the_o reason_n of_o rely_v on_o the_o authority_n of_o those_o person_n for_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o doctrine_n deliver_v by_o they_o from_o whence_o it_o follow_v that_o where_o the_o christian_a faith_n be_v to_o be_v receive_v on_o the_o authority_n of_o any_o person_n in_o any_o age_n those_o person_n ought_v to_o confirm_v that_o authority_n by_o miracle_n as_o the_o apostle_n do_v for_o without_o this_o there_o can_v be_v no_o such_o authority_n whereon_o to_o rely_v antecedent_o to_o the_o embrace_v the_o christian_n faith_n now_o this_o be_v the_o case_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n they_o pretend_v not_o to_o deliver_v any_o doctrine_n whole_o new_a but_o what_o be_v one_o way_n or_o another_o deliver_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n although_o we_o therein_o charge_v they_o with_o fraud_n and_o falsehood_n but_o yield_v this_o yet_o they_o contend_v that_o no_o man_n can_v have_v sufficient_a ground_n for_o believe_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o from_o their_o church_n infallibility_n in_o this_o case_n it_o be_v plain_a that_o they_o make_v their_o church_n infallibility_n to_o be_v as_o much_o the_o reason_n of_o person_n believe_v as_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o their_o time_n be_v and_o therefore_o i_o say_v they_o ought_v to_o prove_v this_o infallibility_n in_o the_o same_o way_n and_o by_o miracle_n as_o great_a public_a and_o convince_a as_o the_o apostle_n do_v 3._o yet_o he_o be_v very_o loath_a to_o let_v go_v the_o miracle_n of_o their_o church_n do_v in_o late_a time_n as_o well_o as_o former_o 29._o it_o will_v be_v too_o large_a a_o task_n in_o this_o place_n to_o examine_v the_o miracle_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o may_v be_v better_o do_v on_o another_o occasion_n all_o that_o i_o have_v here_o to_o say_v be_v that_o all_o the_o miracle_n pretend_v among_o they_o signify_v nothing_o to_o our_o present_a purpose_n unless_o those_o miracle_n give_v evidence_n of_o the_o authority_n and_o infallibility_n of_o those_o by_o who_o they_o be_v do_v and_o they_o will_v do_v well_o to_o show_v where_o ever_o in_o scripture_n god_n do_v bestow_v a_o gift_n of_o miracle_n upon_o any_o but_o for_o this_o end_n and_o what_o reason_n there_o be_v that_o god_n shall_v alter_v the_o method_n and_o course_n of_o his_o providence_n in_o a_o matter_n of_o so_o great_a concernment_n to_o the_o faith_n of_o mankind_n such_o miracle_n as_o be_v wrought_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n we_o defy_v all_o other_o religion_n in_o the_o world_n to_o produce_v any_o like_o they_o to_o confirm_v their_o doctrine_n but_o such_o as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n pretend_v scarce_o any_o religion_n in_o the_o world_n but_o have_v pretend_v to_o the_o same_o and_o for_o his_o most_o credible_a history_n he_o vouch_v for_o they_o i_o hope_v he_o do_v not_o mean_v the_o church_n history_n write_v by_o s._n c._n nor_o any_o other_o such_o legend_n among_o they_o if_o he_o do_v i_o assure_v he_o they_o have_v a_o very_a easy_a faith_n that_o think_v they_o credible_a and_o if_o all_o miracle_n that_o be_v so_o call_v by_o those_o among_o who_o they_o be_v do_v be_v a_o argument_n 30._o as_o he_o say_v of_o the_o security_n of_o salvation_n in_o the_o communion_n and_o faith_n of_o that_o church_n wherein_o they_o be_v do_v i_o hope_v he_o will_v be_v so_o just_a to_o allow_v the_o same_o to_o the_o arrian_n novatian_o donatist_n and_o other_o who_o all_o pretend_v to_o miracle_n as_o well_o as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o any_o one_o that_o be_v verse_v in_o church-history_n may_v easy_o see_v but_o of_o this_o more_o at_o large_a elsewhere_o 2._o concern_v the_o proof_n of_o infallibility_n from_o scripture_n i_o say_v down_o this_o proposition_n nothing_o can_v be_v more_o absurd_a 17._o than_o to_o pretend_v the_o necessity_n of_o such_o a_o infallible_a commission_n and_o assistance_n to_o assure_v we_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o those_o write_n and_o to_o interpret_v they_o
with_o in_o the_o field_n and_o to_o speak_v truth_n n._n o._n seem_v to_o understand_v his_o art_n better_o than_o to_o meddle_v with_o such_o heavy_a and_o antique_a armour_n which_o every_o one_o have_v be_v foil_v with_o that_o have_v undertake_v to_o combat_v with_o they_o only_o it_o seem_v a_o little_a for_o the_o credit_n of_o their_o cause_n to_o point_v to_o such_o a_o magazine_n which_o in_o the_o day_n of_o ignorance_n and_o credulity_n the_o romantic_a age_n of_o the_o church_n be_v in_o great_a request_n but_o we_o must_v now_o buckle_v ourselves_o to_o a_o new_a manner_n of_o combat_n which_o be_v from_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o of_o the_o very_a same_o nature_n with_o what_o we_o have_v for_o the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n this_o i_o confess_v be_v bright_a shine_a armour_n and_o may_v do_v great_a service_n if_o it_o will_v hold_v but_o that_o must_v be_v judge_v upon_o trial_n which_o i_o now_o set_v myself_o to_o but_o we_o shall_v find_v that_o no_o weapon_n form_v against_o truth_n can_v prosper_v and_o it_o have_v be_v long_o observe_v of_o rome_n that_o it_o can_v never_o endure_v a_o close_a siege_n the_o question_n now_o be_v whether_o they_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v the_o same_o universal_a tradition_n for_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o guide_n of_o it_o w_z ch_z we_o have_v for_o the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n w_z ch_z he_o assert_v it_o be_v i_o suppose_v agree_v on_o both_o side_n that_o the_o tradition_n on_o w_z ch_z we_o receive_v and_o believe_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v universal_a as_o to_o all_o age_n and_o time_n of_o the_o church_n that_o from_o the_o beginning_n all_o dispute_v in_o religion_n among_o true_a christian_n be_v build_v upon_o the_o supposition_n of_o it_o that_o in_o no_o age_n any_o person_n be_v allow_v to_o be_v good_a christian_n who_o make_v doubt_n of_o it_o that_o every_o age_n do_v afford_v plentiful_a testimony_n of_o the_o belief_n of_o it_o this_o be_v that_o universal_a tradition_n we_o receive_v the_o scripture_n upon_o and_o let_v any_o thing_n like_o this_o be_v produce_v for_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o guide_n of_o their_o church_n and_o we_o yield_v up_o the_o cause_n to_o they_o can_v any_o fair_a term_n than_o these_o be_v desire_v but_o we_o expect_v proof_n and_o so_o i_o perceive_v we_o may_v do_v to_o the_o world_n end_n i_o commend_v the_o ingenuity_n of_o n._n o._n for_o endeavour_v to_o escape_v out_o of_o the_o circle_n any_o way_n but_o i_o believe_v they_o think_v themselves_o as_o wise_a who_o still_o dance_n within_o it_o know_v the_o impossibility_n of_o do_v any_o good_a in_o this_o other_o way_n the_o only_a argument_n he_o insist_o upon_o be_v so_o weak_a that_o i_o wonder_v he_o have_v not_o consider_v how_o often_o it_o have_v be_v answer_v by_o their_o own_o writer_n for_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o provincial_a council_n as_o well_o as_o general_n have_v anathematise_v dissenter_n and_o pronounce_v they_o heretic_n which_o be_v his_o only_a argument_n to_o prove_v this_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n infallibility_n 10._o and_o they_o have_v no_o way_n to_o answer_v it_o but_o by_o say_v this_o do_v not_o imply_v their_o infallibility_n and_o if_o it_o do_v not_o in_o the_o case_n of_o provincial_a council_n why_o shall_v he_o think_v it_o do_v in_o the_o case_n of_o general_n for_o the_o anathema_n of_o provincial_a council_n do_v not_o relate_v to_o the_o acceptation_n of_o their_o decree_n either_o by_o the_o pope_n or_o the_o whole_a church_n as_o n._n o._n suppose_n but_o do_v proceed_v upon_o their_o own_o assurance_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o what_o they_o decree_v otherwise_o their_o anathema_n will_v have_v be_v only_o conditional_a and_o not_o absolute_a and_o peremptory_a as_o we_o see_v they_o be_v but_o i_o need_v give_v no_o other_o answer_n to_o this_o argument_n than_o in_o the_o word_n of_o dr._n field_n who_o n._n o._n appeal_v to_o before_o 4._o viz._n that_o council_n denounce_v anathema_n not_o because_o they_o think_v every_o one_o that_o disobey_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n to_o be_v accurse_v but_o because_o they_o be_v persuade_v in_o particular_a that_o this_o be_v the_o eternal_a truth_n of_o god_n which_o they_o propose_v therefore_o they_o accurse_v they_o that_o obstinate_o shall_v resist_v as_o st._n paul_n will_v every_o christian_a man_n to_o anathematise_v a_o angel_n come_v from_o heaven_n if_o he_o shall_v teach_v he_o any_o other_o doctrine_n than_o he_o have_v already_o learned_a yet_o be_v not_o every_o particular_a christian_a free_a from_o possibility_n of_o err_a if_o the_o argument_n than_o be_v good_a from_o anathematise_v dissenter_n and_o call_v they_o heretic_n every_o particular_a person_n must_v by_o it_o be_v prove_v infallible_a who_o be_v bind_v to_o anathematise_v even_o angel_n from_o heaven_n in_o case_n of_o deliver_v any_o other_o doctrine_n from_o the_o gospel_n so_o that_o this_o which_o be_v his_o only_a argument_n in_o stead_n of_o prove_v a_o universal_a tradition_n will_v prove_v a_o universal_a infallibility_n let_v the_o reader_n now_o judge_v in_o his_o conscience_n whether_o here_o be_v any_o thing_n offer_v in_o the_o way_n of_o tradition_n for_o the_o church_n infallibility_n that_o may_v bear_v the_o least_o proportion_n with_o the_o tradition_n on_o which_o we_o receive_v the_o scripture_n and_o yet_o if_o this_o have_v be_v true_a it_o have_v be_v almost_o impossible_a that_o any_o one_o age_n shall_v have_v pass_v without_o remarkable_a testimony_n of_o it_o for_o no_o age_n of_o the_o church_n have_v be_v so_o happy_a as_o not_o to_o have_v occasion_n for_o a_o infallible_a judge_n of_o controversy_n if_o any_o such_o have_v be_v appoint_v by_o christ_n and_o therefore_o it_o can_v be_v imagine_v but_o that_o christian_n must_v in_o all_o controversy_n arise_v have_v appeal_v to_o he_o and_o stand_v to_o his_o determination_n which_o must_v have_v be_v as_o well_o know_v in_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n as_o judge_n try_v cause_n in_o westminster_n hall_n but_o i_o challenge_v he_o to_o produce_v any_o one_o age_n since_o the_o apostle_n time_n to_o this_o day_n wherein_o the_o infallibility_n of_o a_o stand_a judge_n of_o controversy_n appoint_v by_o christ_n have_v be_v receive_v by_o as_o universal_a a_o consent_n as_o the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n have_v be_v in_o that_o very_a age._n nay_o i_o except_v not_o that_o age_n which_o have_v be_v since_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n for_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n have_v be_v receive_v of_o all_o side_n but_o the_o infallibility_n of_o a_o stand_a judge_n be_v utter_o deny_v by_o one_o side_n and_o vehement_o dispute_v between_o several_a party_n on_o the_o other_o some_o make_v only_o the_o essential_a church_n infallible_a other_o the_o representative_a in_o council_n other_o again_o the_o virtual_a viz._n the_o pope_n and_o suppose_v any_o infallible_a judge_n necessary_a it_o stand_v to_o reason_v it_o shall_v be_v rather_o in_o one_o than_o in_o a_o multitude_n and_o rather_o in_o a_o constant_a succession_n of_o bishop_n in_o one_o see_v than_o in_o a_o uncertain_a number_n who_o can_v be_v convene_v together_o as_o often_o as_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o church_n may_v require_v but_o this_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v receive_v as_o a_o universal_a tradition_n in_o that_o very_a age_n wherein_o we_o live_v that_o only_o one_o busy_a party_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n do_v maintain_v it_o many_o other_o eager_o oppose_v it_o and_o all_o the_o prince_n and_o state_n in_o christendom_n do_v in_o their_o action_n if_o not_o in_o word_n deny_v it_o and_o be_v not_o this_o now_o a_o universal_a tradition_n fit_a to_o be_v match_v with_o that_o of_o the_o scripture_n i_o have_v once_o think_v to_o have_v bring_v testimony_n o●t_v of_o every_o age_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n manifest_o disprove_v any_o such_o tradition_n of_o infallibility_n and_o that_o not_o only_o of_o private_a person_n when_o there_o be_v no_o council_n but_o from_o the_o most_o solemn_a act_n of_o council_n and_o the_o confession_n of_o their_o own_o writer_n but_o that_o will_v swell_v this_o answer_n to_o too_o great_a a_o bulk_n and_o be_v not_o needful_a where_o so_o very_o little_o be_v offer_v for_o the_o proof_n of_o it_o and_o yet_o i_o shall_v be_v ready_a to_o do_v it_o when_o any_o thing_n more_o important_a require_v it_o i_o now_o return_v to_o his_o exception_n against_o the_o latter_a part_n of_o the_o former_a proposition_n viz._n that_o infallibility_n in_o a_o body_n of_o man_n be_v as_o liable_a to_o doubt_n and_o dispute_v as_o in_o those_o book_n from_o whence_o only_o they_o derive_v their_o infallibility_n the_o plain_a meaning_n of_o which_o
be_v that_o it_o be_v a_o foolish_a thing_n to_o make_v use_n of_o a_o medium_n as_o uncertain_a as_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v to_o be_v prove_v by_o it_o and_o therefore_o if_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o the_o church_n be_v as_o liable_a to_o doubt_n and_o dispute_v as_o that_o of_o the_o scripture_n it_o be_v against_o all_o just_a law_n of_o reason_v to_o make_v use_n of_o the_o church_n infallibility_n to_o prove_v the_o scripture_n by_o and_o to_o this_o no_o answer_n can_v be_v proper_a but_o either_o by_o say_v that_o there_o be_v no_o absurdity_n in_o such_o a_o way_n of_o prove_v or_o else_o that_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n be_v more_o certain_a and_o evident_a than_o that_o of_o the_o scripture_n which_o i_o shall_v be_v glad_a to_o see_v undertake_v by_o any_o man_n who_o pretend_v to_o sense_n which_o n._n o._n do_v too_o much_o to_o meddle_v with_o it_o and_o therefore_o fair_o shuffle_n it_o off_o and_o turn_v my_o word_n quite_o to_o another_o meaning_n as_o though_o they_o have_v be_v speak_v of_o the_o doubtful_a sense_n of_o the_o decree_n of_o council_n which_o although_o elsewhere_o i_o have_v sufficient_a reason_n to_o speak_v of_o yet_o that_o be_v not_o pertinent_a to_o this_o place_n but_o this_o be_v a_o way_n to_o escape_v by_o say_v something_o though_o not_o at_o all_o to_o the_o purpose_n and_o yet_o he_o give_v no_o sufficient_a answer_n to_o that_o sense_n he_o put_v upon_o my_o word_n by_o bring_v a_o commentary_n upon_o they_o out_o of_o word_n use_v by_o i_o in_o another_o discourse_n wherein_o i_o do_v at_o large_a argue_v against_o the_o infallibility_n of_o general_n council_n 510._o and_o after_o disprove_v it_o in_o general_a i_o undertake_v to_o prove_v that_o no_o man_n can_v have_v any_o certainty_n of_o faith_n as_o to_o the_o decree_n of_o any_o council_n because_o man_n can_v have_v no_o certainty_n of_o faith_n that_o this_o be_v a_o general_n council_n that_o it_o pass_v such_o decree_n that_o it_o proceed_v lawful_o in_o pass_v they_o and_o that_o this_o be_v the_o certain_a meaning_n of_o they_o all_o which_o be_v necessary_a in_o order_n to_o the_o believe_v those_o decree_n to_o be_v infallible_a with_o such_o a_o faith_n as_o they_o call_v divine_a the_o word_n produce_v by_o he_o do_v speak_v of_o the_o doubtful_a sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o the_o decree_n of_o council_n by_o which_o i_o show_v that_o man_n can_v have_v no_o more_o certainty_n of_o the_o meaning_n of_o they_o than_o of_o doubtful_a place_n of_o scripture_n not_o as_o though_o i_o suppose_v it_o impossible_a for_o council_n to_o give_v a_o clear_a decision_n in_o matter_n of_o controversy_n so_o as_o that_o man_n may_v understand_v their_o meaning_n but_o i_o express_o mention_v such_o decree_n as_o be_v purposely_o frame_v in_o general_a term_n and_o with_o ambiguous_a expression_n pression_n to_o give_v satisfaction_n to_o the_o several_a dissent_v party_n for_o which_o i_o instance_a in_o some_o of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n who_o ambiguity_n be_v most_o manifest_a by_o the_o dispute_v about_o their_o meaning_n raise_v by_o some_o who_o be_v present_a at_o the_o make_n of_o they_o i_o be_o far_o enough_o from_o deny_v that_o a_o commentary_n may_v make_v a_o text_n plain_o or_o that_o a_o judge_n sentence_n can_v be_v clear_a than_o the_o law_n or_o that_o any_o council_n can_v or_o have_v decide_v any_o thing_n clear_a than_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v in_o controversy_n which_o be_v his_o exception_n but_o i_o say_v if_o council_n pretend_v to_o do_v more_o than_o the_o scripture_n and_o to_o decide_v controversy_n for_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o the_o world_n and_o that_o man_n ought_v to_o have_v that_o certainty_n of_o faith_n by_o they_o which_o they_o can_v have_v by_o the_o scripture_n they_o ought_v never_o to_o be_v liable_a to_o the_o same_o ambiguity_n and_o obscurity_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o which_o the_o scripture_n be_v reject_v from_o be_v a_o certain_a rule_n of_o faith_n for_o as_o he_o say_v well_o infallibility_n alone_o end_v not_o controversy_n but_o clearness_n clearness_n in_o the_o point_n controvert_v which_o if_o council_n want_v they_o be_v as_o unfit_a to_o end_v controversy_n as_o the_o scripture_n can_v be_v pretend_v to_o be_v but_o this_o be_v not_o the_o thing_n intend_v by_o i_o in_o this_o proposition_n and_o therefore_o it_o need_v no_o far_a answer_n for_o the_o only_a subject_n of_o that_o proposition_n be_v the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n and_o not_o the_o clearness_n of_o the_o decree_n of_o council_n but_o i_o can_v admire_v the_o ingenuity_n of_o this_o way_n of_o answer_v i_o by_o put_v another_o sense_n upon_o my_o word_n than_o they_o will_v bear_v and_o by_o draw_v word_n out_o of_o another_o discourse_n without_o show_v the_o purpose_n for_o which_o they_o be_v there_o use_v and_o leave_v out_o the_o most_o material_a passage_n which_o tend_v to_o the_o clear_n of_o they_o if_o n._n o._n think_v fit_a to_o oppose_v that_o whole_a discourse_n against_o the_o infallibility_n of_o general_n council_n and_o set_v down_o fair_o the_o several_a argument_n i_o shall_v be_v then_o too_o blame_v not_o to_o return_v a_o just_a answer_n but_o i_o be_o not_o bind_v to_o follow_v he_o in_o such_o strange_a excursion_n from_o the_o 17._o proposition_n of_o this_o book_n to_o a_o single_a passage_n in_o a_o large_a book_n and_o from_o that_o back_n to_o another_o at_o a_o mighty_a distance_n in_o the_o same_o book_n which_o be_v dismember_v from_o the_o body_n of_o the_o discourse_n must_v needs_o lose_v much_o of_o their_o strength_n yet_o with_o all_o the_o disadvantage_n he_o take_v they_o which_o be_v such_o that_o the_o best_a book_n in_o the_o world_n may_v be_v confute_v in_o that_o manner_n he_o have_v no_o great_a cause_n to_o glory_n in_o the_o execution_n he_o have_v do_v upon_o they_o in_o answer_n to_o my_o lord_n of_o canterbury_n adversary_n who_o boast_v of_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n 101_o because_o whatever_o the_o private_a opinion_n of_o man_n be_v they_o be_v ready_a to_o submit_v their_o judgement_n to_o the_o censure_n and_o determination_n of_o the_o church_n i_o have_v say_v that_o this_o will_v hold_v as_o well_o or_o better_a for_o our_o unity_n as_o they_o because_o all_o man_n be_v willing_a to_o submit_v their_o judgement_n to_o scripture_n which_o be_v agree_v on_o all_o side_n to_o be_v infallible_a against_o these_o word_n thus_o take_v alone_o n._n o._n spend_v two_o or_o three_o page_n which_o may_v have_v be_v spare_v if_o he_o have_v but_o fair_o express_v what_o immediate_o follow_v they_o in_o these_o word_n if_o you_o say_v it_o can_v be_v know_v what_o scripture_n determine_v but_o it_o may_v be_v easy_o what_o the_o church_n define_v it_o be_v easy_o answer_v that_o the_o event_n show_v it_o to_o be_v far_o otherwise_o for_o how_o many_o dispute_n be_v there_o concern_v the_o power_n of_o determine_v matter_n of_o faith_n to_o who_o it_o belong_v in_o what_o way_n it_o must_v be_v manage_v whether_o party_n ought_v to_o be_v hear_v in_o matter_n of_o doctrine_n what_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o decree_n be_v when_o they_o be_v make_v which_o raise_v as_o many_o division_n as_o be_v before_o they_o as_o appear_v by_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o the_o late_a of_o pope_n innocent_n relate_v to_o the_o five_o proposition_n so_o that_o upon_o the_o whole_a it_o appear_v set_v aside_o force_n and_o fraud_n which_o be_v excellent_a principle_n of_o christian_a unity_n we_o be_v upon_o as_o fair_a term_n of_o union_n as_o they_o be_v among_o themselves_o i_o do_v not_o therefore_o say_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v no_o advantage_n at_o all_o in_o point_n of_o unity_n but_o that_o all_o the_o advantage_n it_o have_v come_v from_o force_n and_o fraud_n and_o set_v these_o aside_o we_o be_v upon_o as_o good_a term_n of_o union_n as_o they_o and_o we_o do_v not_o envy_v they_o the_o effect_n of_o tyranny_n and_o deceit_n it_o be_v the_o union_n of_o christian_n we_o contend_v for_o and_o not_o of_o slave_n or_o fool_n we_o leave_v the_o turk_n and_o the_o pope_n to_o vie_v with_o each_o other_o in_o this_o kind_n of_o unity_n although_o i_o believe_v the_o turk_n have_v much_o the_o advantage_n in_o it_o and_o i_o free_o yield_v to_o n._n o._n that_o they_o have_v a_o just_a pretence_n to_o unity_n without_o truth_n than_o we_o which_o be_v agreeable_a to_o what_o he_o plead_v for_o 43._o that_o they_o be_v more_o unite_v in_o opinion_n than_o we_o unite_v in_o opinion_n i_o say_v true_a or_o false_a say_v he_o here_o matter_n not_o we_o speak_v here_o of_o union_n not_o of_o truth_n 44._o this_o and_o
remain_v unshaken_a but_o say_v n._n o._n the_o scripture_n be_v obscure_a in_o some_o great_a and_o important_a point_n because_o s._n peter_n say_v that_o man_n unlearned_a and_o unstable_a though_o it_o may_v be_v diligent_a enough_o wrest_v some_o place_n of_o scripture_n hard_a to_o be_v understand_v to_o their_o own_o destruction_n but_o do_v s._n peter_n say_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v so_o hard_a to_o be_v understand_v that_o sober_a and_o devout_a mind_n can_v learn_v therein_o what_o be_v necessary_a to_o their_o salvation_n this_o have_v be_v indeed_o to_o their_o purpose_n but_o it_o be_v far_o enough_o from_o st._n peter_n he_o only_o say_v that_o in_o st._n paul_n epistle_n there_o be_v some_o difficult_a passage_n which_o man_n that_o want_v judgement_n and_o constancy_n and_o it_o may_v be_v diligence_n too_o be_v ready_a to_o pervert_v to_o their_o own_o mischief_n but_o if_o there_o be_v such_o difficulty_n be_v there_o nothing_o plain_a and_o easy_a if_o bad_a man_n may_v pervert_v they_o may_v no●_n good_a man_n make_v a_o good_a use_n of_o they_o if_o some_o may_v destroy_v themselves_o by_o their_o own_o weakness_n and_o folly_n may_v not_o other_o be_v save_v by_o their_o diligence_n and_o care_n if_o it_o be_v prove_v by_o n._n o._n that_o st._n peter_n charge_v all_o this_o upo●_n they_o for_o want_n of_o adhere_v to_o their_o guide_n that_o will_v approach_v near_o his_o business_n but_o if_o st._n peter_n have_v intend_v any_o such_o thing_n as_o n._n o._n insinuate_v what_o fair_a opportunity_n have_v there_o be_v of_o prevent_v this_o instability_n in_o other_o by_o tell_v they_o that_o god_n have_v appoint_v infallible_a guide_n in_o his_o church_n to_o prevent_v such_o abuse_n of_o scripture_n and_o that_o so_o long_o as_o they_o adhere_v to_o they_o they_o be_v safe_a but_o there_o be_v not_o the_o least_o word_n in_o st._n peter_n to_o this_o purpose_n when_o it_o have_v be_v most_o necessary_a to_o have_v give_v such_o advice_n but_o he_o only_o bid_v they_o 18._o have_v a_o care_n of_o imitate_v the_o inconstancy_n of_o such_o wicked_a man_n and_o grow_v in_o the_o grace_n and_o knowledge_n of_o jesus_n christ._n if_o on_o so_o fair_a and_o just_a a_o occasion_n offer_v st._n peter_n himself_o who_o they_o believe_v to_o have_v be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n at_o that_o time_n and_o at_o rome_n at_o the_o write_n of_o this_o epistle_n do_v whole_o omit_v refer_v man_n in_o the_o sense_n of_o obscure_a place_n to_o infallible_a guide_n what_o can_v we_o else_o infer_v but_o that_o st._n peter_n know_v of_o no_o such_o appointment_n of_o christ_n or_o think_v no_o such_o thing_n of_o necessity_n for_o his_o church_n for_o if_o he_o have_v such_o be_v his_o care_n and_o faithfulness_n he_o will_v never_o have_v omit_v so_o necessary_a a_o thing_n if_o the_o salvation_n of_o man_n soul_n have_v depend_v upon_o it_o if_o it_o be_v not_o then_o necessary_a to_o man_n salvation_n to_o have_v a_o infallible_a interpretation_n of_o doubtful_a place_n controversy_n for_o what_o other_o end_n can_v it_o become_v necessary_a be_v it_o that_o without_o this_o the_o church_n peace_n can_v be_v preserve_v because_o controversy_n arise_v in_o the_o church_n no_o issue_n can_v be_v put_v to_o they_o unless_o there_o be_v a_o infallible_a judge_n to_o determine_v which_o be_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n for_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o scripture_n itself_o shall_v be_v judge_n because_o the_o controversy_n be_v about_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n so_o that_o either_o there_o be_v no_o way_n leave_v to_o determine_v controversy_n or_o there_o must_v be_v a_o infallible_a judge_n to_o deliver_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n in_o doubtful_a place_n this_o be_v the_o force_n of_o all_o that_o i_o know_v can_v be_v say_v in_o this_o matter_n to_o which_o i_o answer_v 1._o the_o strength_n of_o this_o argument_n depend_v upon_o the_o supposition_n of_o the_o necessity_n of_o determine_v controversy_n in_o religion_n by_o a_o live_a judge_n who_o must_v pronounce_v sentence_n between_o the_o party_n in_o 〈◊〉_d which_o supposition_n how_o plausible_a soever_o it_o seem_v be_v not_o build_v on_o any_o sufficient_a foundation_n of_o scripture_n or_o reason_n for_o the_o weakness_n of_o humane_a understanding_n the_o power_n of_o interest_n and_o passion_n and_o the_o ambiguity_n of_o word_n be_v as_o apt_a to_o beget_v dispute_n in_o religion_n as_o in_o any_o other_o thing_n so_o that_o we_o have_v 〈◊〉_d ca●se_n at_o all_o to_o wonder_v that_o there_o shall_v happen_v to_o be_v controversy_n among_o man_n about_o there_o 〈◊〉_d when_o we_o see_v they_o daily_o happen_v about_o the_o law_n of_o every_o country_n the_o only_a question_n now_o be_v whether_o as_o the_o necessity_n of_o people_n have_v make_v it_o necessary_a that_o there_o shall_v not_o only_o be_v law_n but_o judge_n who_o shall_v be_v as_o the_o most_o equal_a arbitrator_n to_o put_v a_o end_n to_o such_o difference_n as_o may_v happen_v among_o man_n about_o matter_n of_o right_n and_o law_n it_o be_v thus_o in_o religion_n too_o and_o this_o question_n be_v plain_o about_o a_o matter_n of_o fact_n i.e._n whether_o christ_n have_v appoint_v such_o judge_n in_o all_o age_n who_o be_v to_o determine_v all_o emergent_a controversy_n about_o the_o difficult_a place_n of_o his_o law_n and_o in_o this_o case_n we_o think_v it_o be_v all_o the_o reason_n in_o the_o world_n that_o they_o who_o affirm_v shall_v prove_v especial_o when_o they_o affirm_v a_o matter_n of_o their_o own_o right_n and_o challenge_v a_o submission_n from_o other_o on_o the_o account_n of_o it_o we_o desire_v they_o who_o challenge_v to_o be_v our_o infallible_a guide_n that_o they_o will_v show_v their_o commission_n and_o produce_v their_o patent_n for_o as_o we_o be_v ready_a to_o yield_v obedience_n if_o they_o crave_v it_o so_o we_o think_v it_o treason_n and_o tyranny_n in_o they_o to_o usurp_v it_o if_o they_o have_v it_o not_o and_o it_o be_v to_o no_o purpose_n to_o talk_v of_o the_o benefit_n that_o will_v come_v to_o the_o world_n by_o a_o infallible_a judge_n of_o controversy_n unless_o they_o first_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v one_o but_o we_o must_v not_o allow_v man_n to_o prove_v thing_n to_o be_v mere_o because_o they_o think_v it_o fit_v they_o shall_v be_v for_o that_o be_v to_o make_v themselves_o wise_a than_o christ_n and_o rather_o to_o tell_v he_o what_o he_o shall_v have_v do_v than_o prove_v what_o he_o have_v do_v what_o if_o christ_n have_v provide_v for_o the_o necessary_n of_o salvation_n by_o a_o clear_a revelation_n shall_v leave_v other_o thing_n in_o the_o dark_a to_o exercise_v the_o wit_n of_o some_o and_o the_o charity_n of_o other_o what_o if_o he_o think_v it_o sufficient_a to_o oblige_v man_n to_o the_o great_a honesty_n and_o integrity_n in_o know_v and_o do_v the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o have_v promise_v to_o pass_v by_o the_o error_n and_o fail_n man_n be_v subject_a to_o bare_o as_o man_n what_o if_o he_o foresee_v this_o matter_n of_o end_v controversy_n will_v be_v a_o occasion_n of_o raise_v one_o of_o the_o great_a in_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o become_v a_o pretence_n of_o the_o most_o intolerable_a tyranny_n over_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n and_o therefore_o what_o if_o he_o think_v it_o reasonable_a to_o leave_v the_o fail_n of_o man_n understanding_n and_o life_n upon_o the_o same_o term_n so_o as_o to_o give_v sufficient_a mean_n to_o prevent_v either_o but_o not_o effectual_o to_o hinder_v man_n from_o fall_v into_o either_o of_o they_o what_o if_o the_o nature_n of_o religion_n will_v not_o bear_v such_o a_o determination_n of_o controversy_n as_o civil_a matter_n will_v because_o civil_a matter_n concern_v the_o right_a and_o wrong_n of_o particular_a person_n in_o which_o it_o be_v not_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o judge_n so_o much_o as_o the_o civil_a force_n whereby_o it_o be_v back_v which_o put_v a_o end_n to_o the_o dispute_n but_o in_o matter_n of_o religion_n the_o end_a controversy_n can_v be_v no_o effect_n of_o force_n and_o power_n but_o of_o reason_n and_o conviction_n of_o conscience_n and_o all_o the_o pretend_a infallibility_n in_o the_o world_n can_v never_o satisfy_v my_o mind_n unless_o i_o be_v first_o assure_v of_o that_o infallibility_n in_o all_o civil_a cause_n it_o be_v agree_v on_o both_o side_n that_o such_o judge_n be_v appoint_v to_o determine_v case_n of_o law_n and_o on_o the_o supposition_n of_o this_o man_n proceed_v to_o trial_n before_o they_o but_o in_o our_o case_n this_o be_v the_o main_a thing_n in_o dispute_n and_o he_o that_o pretend_v to_o be_v the_o judge_n be_v the_o most_o accuse_a party_n and_o what_o reason_n can_v there_o be_v that_o only_o on_o the_o pretence_n of_o great_a
the_o number_n of_o 30._o that_o st._n paul_n often_o mention_n these_o aeön_n and_o the_o pro●uctions_n of_o they_o that_o the_o duodecade_n of_o aeön_n be_v employ_v in_o our_o saviour_n dispute_v with_o the_o doctor_n at_o 12._o year_n of_o age_n and_o in_o the_o choice_n of_o the_o 12._o apostle_n and_o the_o remain_v 18._o by_o his_o abide_n 18._o month_n as_o they_o say_v with_o his_o disciple_n after_o his_o resurrection_n and_o where_o ever_o in_o scripture_n they_o meet_v with_o word_n suitable_a to_o the_o description_n of_o their_o aeön_n they_o pretend_v that_o they_o do_v refer_v to_o their_o notion_n but_o be_v obscure_o express_v on_o purpose_n for_o which_o end_n they_o make_v use_v of_o parable_n and_o the_o first_o of_o st._n john_n and_o many_o passage_n in_o st._n paul_n epistle_n what_o course_n now_o do_v irenaeus_n take_v to_o clear_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n in_o these_o controvert_v place_n do_v he_o till_o they_o that_o god_n have_v appoint_v infallible_a guide_n in_o his_o church_n to_o who_o appeal_n be_v to_o be_v make_v in_o all_o such_o case_n nothing_o like_o it_o through_o his_o whole_a book_n but_o he_o argue_v with_o very_o good_a reason_n that_o no_o such_o thing_n as_o they_o imagine_v can_v be_v intend_v by_o the_o scripture_n 1._o from_o the_o scope_n and_o design_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o ought_v chief_o to_o be_v regard_v whereas_o they_o only_o take_v some_o particular_a passage_n which_o serve_v most_o to_o their_o purpose_n without_o look_v to_o the_o series_n of_o the_o discourse_n wherein_o they_o be_v therefore_o say_v he_o they_o make_v only_o a_o rope_n of_o sand_n when_o they_o apply_v the_o parable_n of_o our_o saviour_n or_o the_o say_n of_o the_o prophet_n or_o apostle_n to_o their_o opinion_n 1._o for_o they_o pass_v over_o the_o order_n and_o connexion_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o as_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lie_v loose_v the_o member_n of_o truth_n from_o each_o other_o and_o then_o transform_v and_o change_v they_o from_o one_o thing_n to_o another_o thereby_o deceive_v man_n as_o if_o say_v he_o a_o man_n shall_v take_v a_o excellent_a image_n of_o a_o prince_n do_v with_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o art_n in_o precious_a stone_n and_o remove_v those_o stone_n out_o of_o their_o proper_a place_n and_o turn_v they_o into_o the_o shape_n of_o a_o dog_n or_o a_o fox_n ill_o put_v together_o and_o shall_v then_o affirm_v that_o because_o the_o stone_n be_v the_o same_o that_o this_o image_n of_o a_o dog_n or_o a_o fox_n be_v the_o image_n of_o the_o prince_n make_v by_o such_o a_o excellent_a artist_n after_o the_o very_a same_o way_n say_v he_o do_v they_o use_v the_o scripture_n or_o as_o he_o afterward_o express_v it_o they_o take_v several_a word_n and_o name_n here_o and_o there_o and_o put_v they_o together_o much_o after_o the_o way_n of_o those_o who_o will_v apply_v the_o word_n of_o homer_n to_o any_o argument_n propose_v to_o they_o which_o some_o have_v do_v so_o artificial_o that_o unskilful_a man_n have_v be_v persuade_v that_o homer_n do_v mean_v that_o very_a thing_n when_o he_o write_v his_o poem_n as_o one_o do_v the_o go_n of_o hercules_n to_o cerberus_n so_o exact_o in_o the_o word_n of_o homer_n put_v together_o in_o the_o greek_a fragment_n of_o irenaeus_n that_o those_o who_o do_v not_o consider_v upon_o what_o different_a occasion_n those_o word_n be_v use_v by_o he_o some_o be_v speak_v of_o ulysses_n some_o of_o priamus_n some_o of_o maenelaus_n and_o agamemnon_n and_o some_o of_o hercules_n may_v imagine_v that_o the_o poet_n intend_v to_o describe_v what_o the_o other_o express_v by_o he_o but_o he_o that_o will_v examine_v the_o several_a place_n will_v find_v that_o the_o word_n indeed_o be_v homer_n but_o the_o sense_n his_o that_o so_o apply_v they_o so_o it_o be_v in_o this_o case_n the_o word_n be_v the_o scripture_n but_o apply_v quite_o in_o another_o way_n than_o they_o be_v intend_v the_o stone_n be_v the_o same_o but_o yet_o the_o image_n of_o the_o fox_n be_v not_o to_o be_v take_v for_o that_o of_o the_o prince_n and_o when_o he_o have_v take_v the_o pain_n to_o put_v every_o thing_n in_o its_o proper_a and_o due_a place_n he_o will_v then_o easy_o find_v out_o the_o deceit_n and_o by_o the_o help_n of_o this_o rule_n irenaeus_n vindicate_v the_o place_n of_o scripture_n which_o the_o valentinian_o make_v use_v of_o and_o make_v it_o evident_a that_o can_v not_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o they_o which_o they_o put_v upon_o they_o as_o he_o do_v particular_o prove_v that_o st._n john_n by_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o gospel_n can_v not_o mean_v the_o first_o ogdoad_n of_o the_o valentinian_o to_o the_o very_a same_o purpose_n do_v tertullian_n argue_v against_o their_o way_n of_o interpret_n scripture_n 39_o that_o although_o it_o seem_v to_o have_v wit_n and_o easiness_n in_o it_o yet_o it_o be_v no_o more_o than_o be_v often_o practise_v on_o virgil_n and_o homer_n as_o well_o as_o the_o scripture_n for_o we_o have_v see_v virgil_n say_v he_o with_o the_o same_o word_n turn_v quite_o to_o another_o sense_n as_o hosidius_n get_v a_o make_v the_o tragedy_n of_o medea_n 187._o out_o of_o virgil_n some_o fragment_n whereof_o be_v still_o extant_a and_o one_o have_v explain_v cebes_n his_o table_n in_o virgil_n word_n and_o many_o have_v apply_v the_o word_n of_o homer_n in_o their_o cento_n to_o different_a purpose_n and_o not_o only_o some_o of_o late_a 38._o but_o isidore_n sai_z that_o prob●_n and_o pomponius_n before_o his_o time_n have_v mad●_n virgil_n evangelize_n therefore_o it_o be_v n●_n wonder_n say_v tertullian_n that_o the_o scripture_n shall_v be_v so_o abuse_v it_o be_v much_o more_o fruitful_a and_o applicable_a to_o several_a purpose_n than_o other_o write_n be_v nay_o say_v he_o i_o be_o not_o afraid_a to_o say_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v so_o frame_v by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n that_o they_o may_v afford_v matter_n for_o heretic_n to_o work_v upon_o since_o i_o read_v that_o there_o must_v be_v heresy_n which_o can_v be_v without_o the_o scripture_n and_o sure_o then_o he_o do_v not_o imagine_v that_o god_n have_v appoint_v a_o infallible_a judge_n on_o purpose_n to_o prevent_v the_o be_v of_o heresy_n by_o give_v a_o infallible_a sense_n of_o scripture_n 2._o from_o the_o repugnancy_n of_o the_o sense_n they_o give_v to_o other_o place_n of_o scripture_n irenaeus_n observe_v 46._o that_o the_o heretic_n delight_v most_o in_o dark_a place_n and_o leave_v the_o plain_a one_o whereas_o we_o ought_v most_o to_o rely_v upon_o the_o plain_a place_n and_o by_o they_o interpret_v the_o obscure_a for_o such_o who_o love_v god_n and_o the_o truth_n will_v study_v most_o those_o thing_n which_o god_n put_v under_o our_o command_n and_o knowledge_n and_o those_o be_v thing_n which_o be_v plain_a before_o our_o eye_n and_o be_v open_a and_o without_o ambiguity_n lay_v down_o in_o scripture_n and_o to_o these_o parable_n and_o dark_a place_n ought_v to_o be_v fit_v and_o by_o this_o mean_v they_o may_v be_v interpret_v without_o danger_n and_o of_o all_o alike_o and_o the_o body_n of_o truth_n remain_v entire_a with_o a_o suitableness_n of_o all_o its_o part_n but_o without_o this_o every_o man_n interpret_v as_o he_o please_v and_o there_o will_v be_v no_o certain_a rule_n of_o truth_n but_o every_o interpretation_n will_v be_v according_a to_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o interpreter_n and_o m●n_z will_v contradict_v each_o other_o as_o the_o philosopher_n do_v and_o by_o this_o mean_n man_n will_v be_v always_o seek_v and_o never_o find_v because_o they_o cast_v away_o the_o mean_n of_o find_v see_v therefore_o say_v he_o that_o all_o the_o scripture_n both_o prophetical_a and_o evangelical_n be_v plain_a and_o clear_a and_o may_v be_v hear_v alike_o of_o all_o they_o must_v be_v very_o blind_a that_o will_v not_o see_v in_o so_o great_a light_n but_o darken_v themselves_o in_o parable_n wherein_o every_o one_o of_o they_o think_v he_o have_v find_v a_o god_n of_o his_o own_o and_o from_o hence_o he_o very_o much_o blame_v the_o heretic_n since_o they_o can_v not_o so_o much_o as_o pretend_v that_o any_o thing_n be_v plain_o say_v for_o they_o in_o scripture_n but_o only_o intimate_v in_o dark_a say_n and_o parable_n that_o they_o will_v leave_v that_o which_o be_v certain_a and_o undoubted_a and_o true_a for_o that_o which_o be_v uncertain_a and_o obscure_a which_o he_o say_v be_v not_o to_o build_v the_o house_n upon_o the_o firm_a and_o strong_a ro●k_n but_o upon_o the_o uncertainty_n of_o the_o sand_n on_o which_o it_o may_v be_v easy_o overturn_v this_o excellent_a rule_n for_o interpret_n scripture_n irenaeus_n make_v great_a use_n of_o in_o his_o follow_a discourse_n and_o in_o the_o
because_o it_o be_v not_o mention_v out_o of_o what_o they_o be_v make_v hermogenes_n prove_v they_o be_v make_v out_o of_o matter_n because_o it_o be_v not_o say_v they_o be_v make_v of_o nothing_o to_o determine_v therefore_o the_o sense_n of_o these_o place_n tertullian_n show_v from_o reason_n the_o repugnancy_n of_o the_o eternity_n of_o matter_n to_o the_o attribute_n of_o god_n 21._o he_o compare_v several_a place_n of_o scripture_n together_o 22._o he_o reason_n from_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o expression_n and_o the_o idiom_n of_o scripture_n i_o adore_v say_v he_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o show_v i_o both_o the_o maker_n and_o the_o thing_n make_v but_o the_o gospel_n likewise_o discover_v by_o who_o all_o thing_n be_v make_v but_o the_o scripture_n no_o where_o say_v that_o all_o thing_n be_v make_v out_o of_o matter_n let_v the_o shop_n of_o hermogenes_n show_v where_o it_o be_v write_v and_o if_o it_o be_v not_o write_v let_v he_o fear_v the_o woe_n denounce_v to_o those_o who_o add_v or_o take_v from_o what_o be_v write_v he_o examine_v the_o several_a place_n in_o dispute_n and_o by_o prove_v that_o sense_n which_o hermogenes_n put_v upon_o they_o to_o be_v repugnant_a to_o reason_n as_o he_o show_v to_o the_o end_n of_o that_o book_n he_o conclude_v his_o sense_n of_o scripture_n to_o be_v false_a and_o erroneous_a against_o praxeas_n he_o dispute_v whether_o god_n the_o father_n take_v our_o nature_n upon_o he_o 20._o and_o the_o argument_n on_o both_o side_n be_v draw_v from_o the_o scripture_n but_o tertullian_n well_o observe_v that_o they_o insist_v upon_o two_o or_o three_o place_n of_o scripture_n and_o will_v make_v all_o the_o rest_n though_o far_o more_o to_o yield_v to_o they_o whereas_o the_o few_o place_n ought_v to_o be_v understand_v according_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o great_a number_n but_o this_o say_v he_o be_v the_o property_n of_o all_o heretic_n because_o they_o can_v find_v but_o few_o place_n for_o they_o they_o defend_v the_o small_a number_n against_o the_o great_a which_o be_v against_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o rule_n wherein_o the_o first_o and_o the_o most_o aught_o to_o oversway_v the_o latter_a and_o the_o few_o and_o therefore_o he_o set_v himself_o throughout_o that_o book_n to_o produce_v the_o far_o great_a number_n of_o place_n of_o scripture_n which_o do_v assert_v the_o distinction_n between_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n and_o consequent_o that_o it_o can_v not_o be_v the_o father_n who_o suffer_v for_o we_o hitherto_o we_o find_v nothing_o say_v of_o a_o infallible_a guide_n to_o give_v the_o certain_a sense_n of_o scripture_n when_o the_o fair_a occasion_n be_v offer_v by_o those_o who_o dispute_v the_o most_o concern_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n in_o the_o age_n wherein_o they_o live_v viz._n by_o irenaeus_n and_o tertullian_n i_o now_o proceed_v to_o clemens_n of_o alexandria_n who_o in_o his_o learned_a collection_n ●_o propose_v that_o objection_n against_o christianity_n that_o there_o be_v many_o heresy_n among_o christian_n and_o therefore_o man_n can_v believe_v nothing_o to_o which_o he_o answer_v that_o there_o be_v heresy_n among_o the_o jew_n and_o philosopher_n and_o that_o objection_n be_v not_o think_v sufficient_a against_o judaism_n or_o philosophy_n and_o therefore_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v against_o christianity_n beside_o the_o come_n of_o heresy_n be_v foretell_v and_o what_o ever_o be_v foretell_v must_v come_v to_o pass_v the_o physician_n say_v he_o differ_v in_o their_o opinion_n yet_o man_n do_v not_o neglect_v to_o make_v use_n of_o they_o when_o they_o be_v sick_a heresy_n shall_v only_o make_v man_n more_o careful_a what_o they_o choose_v man_n ought_v thereby_o to_o endeavour_v the_o more_o to_o find_v out_o truth_n from_o falsehood_n as_o if_o two_o sort_n of_o fruit_n be_v offer_v to_o a_o man_n real_a and_o waxen_a will_v a_o man_n abstain_v from_o both_o because_o one_o be_v counterfeit_v or_o rather_o find_v out_o the_o true_a from_o the_o apparent_a when_o several_a way_n offer_v themselves_o for_o a_o man_n to_o go_v in_o he_o ought_v not_o therefore_o to_o sit_v down_o and_o not_o stir_v a_o step_n further_o but_o he_o use_v the_o best_a mean_n to_o find_v out_o the_o true_a way_n and_o then_o walk_v in_o it_o so_o that_o they_o be_v just_o condemn_v who_o do_v not_o discern_v the_o true_a from_o the_o false_a for_o they_o who_o will_v say_v he_o may_v find_v out_o the_o truth_n for_o either_o there_o be_v demonstration_n or_o not_o all_o grant_v demonstration_n or_o evidence_n who_o do_v not_o destroy_v our_o sense_n if_o there_o be_v demonstration_n there_o must_v be_v search_n and_o enquiry_n make_v and_o by_o the_o scripture_n we_o may_v demonstrative_o learn_v how_o heresy_n fall_v of_o and_o that_o the_o exact_a knowledge_n be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o truth_n and_o the_o ancient_a church_n now_o the_o true_a searcher_n will_v not_o leave_v till_o they_o find_v evidence_n from_o the_o scripture_n to_o this_o end_n he_o commend_v the_o exercise_n of_o man_n reason_n and_o understanding_n impartiality_n or_o lay_v aside_o opinion_n a_o right_a disposition_n of_o soul_n for_o when_o man_n be_v give_v over_o to_o their_o lust_n they_o endeavour_v to_o wrest_v the_o scripture_n to_o they_o but_o he_o establish_v the_o scripture_n as_o the_o only_a principle_n of_o certainty_n to_o christian_n and_o more_o credible_a than_o any_o demonstration_n which_o who_o so_o have_v taste_v be_v call_v faithful_a but_o those_o who_o be_v verse_v in_o they_o be_v the_o true_o know_v man_n the_o great_a objection_n now_o be_v that_o heretic_n make_v use_v of_o scripture_n too_o i_o but_o they_o say_v he_o reject_v what_o they_o please_v and_o do_v not_o follow_v the_o body_n and_o contexture_n of_o prophecy_n but_o take_v ambiguous_a expression_n and_o apply_v they_o to_o their_o own_o opinion_n and_o a_o few_o scatter_a phrase_n without_o regard_v the_o sense_n and_o importance_n of_o they_o for_o in_o the_o scripture_n produce_v by_o they_o you_o may_v find_v they_o either_o make_v use_n of_o mere_a name_n and_o change_v the_o signification_n of_o they_o never_o attend_v to_o the_o scope_n and_o intention_n of_o they_o but_o truth_n say_v he_o do_v not_o lie_v in_o the_o change_n of_o the_o signification_n of_o word_n for_o by_o that_o mean_v all_o truth_n may_v be_v overthrow_v but_o in_o consider_v what_o be_v proper_a and_o perfect_o agreeable_a to_o our_o lord_n and_o almighty_a god_n and_o in_o confirm_v every_o thing_n which_o be_v demonstrate_v by_o the_o scripture_n out_o of_o the_o same_o scripture_n wherein_o clemens_n alexandrinus_n lay_v down_o such_o rule_n as_o he_o think_v necessary_a to_o find_v out_o the_o certain_a sense_n of_o scripture_n viz._n by_o consider_v the_o scope_n and_o coherence_n of_o the_o word_n the_o proper_a sense_n and_o importance_n of_o they_o the_o compare_v of_o scripture_n with_o scripture_n and_o the_o doctrine_n draw_v from_o it_o with_o the_o nature_n and_o property_n of_o god_n all_o which_o be_v excellent_a rule_n without_o the_o least_o intimation_n of_o the_o necessity_n of_o any_o infallible_a interpreter_n to_o give_v the_o certain_a sense_n of_o doubtful_a place_n after_o this_o time_n a_o great_a dispute_n arise_v in_o the_o church_n about_o the_o rebaptise_v heretic_n manage_v by_o the_o eastern_a and_o african_a bishop_n against_o stephen_n bishop_n of_o rome_n here_o the_o question_n be_v about_o the_o sense_n of_o several_a place_n of_o scripture_n and_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o epistle_n of_o cyprian_a and_o firmilian_a 74._o both_o party_n plead_v scripture_n and_o tradition_n for_o themselves_o 75._o but_o no_o such_o thing_n as_o a_o infallibility_n in_o judgement_n be_v plead_v by_o the_o pope_n nor_o any_o thing_n like_o it_o in_o the_o least_o acknowledge_v by_o his_o adversary_n who_o charge_v he_o without_o any_o respect_n to_o his_o infallible_a guideship_n with_o pride_n error_n rashness_n impertinency_n and_o contradict_v himself_o 52._o which_o make_v baronius_n very_o tragical_o exclaim_v and_o although_o he_o make_v use_v of_o this_o as_o a_o great_a argument_n of_o the_o prevalency_n of_o tradition_n because_o the_o opinion_n of_o stephen_n obtain_v in_o the_o church_n yet_o there_o be_v no_o evidence_n at_o all_o that_o any_o church_n do_v submit_v to_o the_o opinion_n of_o stephen_n when_o he_o declare_v himself_o 5._o but_o as_o appear_v by_o dionystus_n of_o alexandria_n epistle_n the_o controversy_n continue_v after_o his_o time_n and_o if_o we_o look_v into_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n in_o follow_v age_n we_o shall_v find_v that_o neither_o stephens_n opinion_n nor_o his_o adversary_n be_v follow_v for_o stephen_n be_v against_o rebaptise_v any_o heretic_n and_o the_o other_o be_v for_o rebaptise_v all_o because_o one_o
baptism_n be_v only_o in_o the_o true_a church_n for_o in_o the_o 19_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a the_o samosatenian_a baptism_n be_v pronounce_v null_n and_o the_o person_n who_o receive_v it_o be_v to_o be_v new_a baptise_a 8._o and_o the_o first_o council_n of_o arles_n decree_n that_o in_o case_n of_o heresy_n man_n be_v to_o receive_v new_a baptism_n but_o not_o otherwise_o the_o second_o council_n of_o arles_n put_v a_o distinction_n between_o heretic_n 17._o decree_a that_o the_o photinian_o and_o samosatenian_o shall_v be_v baptise_a again_o but_o not_o the_o bonofiaci_n no●_n the_o arian_n but_o they_o be_v to_o be_v receive_v upon_o renounce_v their_o heresy_n without_o baptism_n which_o seem_v the_o hard_a to_o understand_v since_o the_o bonosiaci_n be_v no_o other_o than_o photinian_o the_o most_o probable_a way_n of_o solve_v it_o be_v that_o these_o two_o latter_a sort_n do_v preserve_v the_o form_n of_o baptism_n entire_a but_o the_o photinian_o and_o samosatenian_o alter_v it_o which_o st._n augustin_n say_v 44._o be_v a_o thing_n to_o be_v believe_v so_o gennadius_n report_v it_o that_o those_o who_o be_v baptise_a without_o invocation_n of_o the_o b._n trinity_n be_v to_o he_o baptise_a upon_o their_o reception_n into_o the_o church_n not_o rebaptise_v because_o the_o former_a be_v account_v null_n of_o these_o he_o reckon_v not_o only_o the_o paulianist_n and_o photinian_o 52._o but_o the_o bon●s●●ci_n too_o and_o many_o other_o ●●●●●loch_n but_o st._n basil_n determine_v the_o case_n of_o baptism_n not_o from_o the_o form_n but_o from_o the_o faith_n which_o they_o profess_v a_o schismatical_a baptism_n he_o faith_n be_v allow_v but_o not_o heretical_a by_o which_o he_o mean_v such_o as_o deny_v the_o trinity_n and_o therein_o he_o say_v s._n cyprian_n and_o firmilian_a be_v to_o blame_v because_o they_o will_v allow_v no_o baptism_n among_o person_n separate_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n 8._o the_o council_n of_o laodicea_n decree_v that_o the_o novatian_o photinian_o and_o quartodecimans_a be_v to_o be_v receive_v without_o new_a baptism_n but_o not_o the_o montanist_n or_o cataphryges_n but_o binius_fw-la say_v there_o be_v one_o copy_n wherein_o the_o photinian_o be_v leave_v out_o and_o then_o these_o canon_n may_v agree_v with_o the_o rest_n and_o baronius_n assert_n that_o the_o great_a number_n of_o m._n s._n copy_n leave_v out_o photinian_o and_o withal_o he_o prove_v append._n that_o the_o church_n do_v never_o allow_v the_o baptism_n of_o the_o photinian_o though_o it_o do_v of_o the_o arian_n by_o which_o we_o see_v that_o the_o church_n afterward_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o which_o stephen_n pretend_v to_o be_v a_o apostolical_a tradition_n viz._n that_o no_o heretic_n shall_v be_v rebaptise_v and_o from_o hence_o we_o may_v conclude_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v far_o from_o be_v think_v a_o infallible_a guide_n or_o interpreter_n of_o scripture_n either_o by_o that_o or_o succeed_a age_n when_o not_o only_o single_a person_n that_o be_v eminent_a guide_n of_o the_o church_n such_o as_o the_o african_a and_o eastern_a bishop_n be_v oppose_v his_o doctrine_n and_o slight_v his_o excommunication_n but_o several_a council_n call_v both_o in_o the_o east_n and_o africa_n and_o the_o most_o eminent_a council_n of_o the_o church_n afterward_o such_o as_o the_o first_o of_o arles_n and_o nice_a decree_v contrary_a to_o what_o he_o declare_v to_o be_v a_o apostolical_a tradition_n in_o the_o same_o age_n we_o meet_v with_o another_o great_a controversy_n about_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n for_o paulus_n samosatenus_fw-la open_o deny_v the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n and_o assert_v the_o doctrine_n of_o it_o to_o be_v repugnant_a to_o scripture_n and_o the_o ancient_a apostolical_a tradition_n for_o this_o paulus_n revive_v the_o heresy_n of_o artemon_n 28._o who_o follower_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o fragment_n of_o a_o ancient_a writer_n against_o they_o in_o eusebius_n suppose_v to_o be_v caius_z plead_v that_o the_o apostle_n be_v of_o their_o mind_n and_o that_o their_o doctrine_n continue_v in_o the_o church_n till_o the_o time_n of_o victor_n and_o then_o it_o begin_v to_o be_v corrupt_v which_o say_v that_o writer_n will_v seem_v probable_a if_o the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v not_o first_o contradict_v they_o and_o the_o book_n of_o several_a christian_n before_o victor_n time_n so_o that_o we_o see_v the_o main_a of_o the_o controversy_n do_v depend_v upon_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n which_o be_v plead_v on_o both_o side_n but_o what_o course_n be_v take_v in_o this_o important_a controversy_n to_o find_v out_o the_o certain_a sense_n of_o scripture_n do_v they_o appeal_v to_o any_o infallible_a guide_n nothing_o like_o it_o but_o in_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n in_o the_o write_n of_o dionysius_n of_o alexandria_n and_o other_o since_o they_o who_o oppose_v the_o samosatenian_a doctrine_n endeavour_v with_o all_o their_o strength_n to_o prove_v that_o to_o be_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n which_o assert_v the_o divinity_n of_o christ._n it_o be_v great_a pity_n the_o dispute_n of_o malchion_n with_o paulus_n be_v now_o lose_v which_o be_v extant_a in_o eusebius_n his_o time_n but_o in_o the_o question_n and_o answer_n between_o paulus_n and_o dionysius_n 30._o which_o valesius_fw-la without_o reason_n suspect_v since_o st._n hierome_n mention_n his_o epistle_n against_o paulus_n the_o dispute_n be_v about_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n which_o both_o plead_v for_o themselves_o paulus_n insist_o on_o those_o place_n which_o speak_v of_o the_o humane_a infirmity_n of_o christ_n which_o he_o say_v prove_v that_o he_o be_v mere_a man_n and_o not_o god_n the_o other_o answer_v that_o these_o thing_n be_v not_o inconsistent_a with_o the_o be_v of_o the_o divine_a nature_n since_o expression_n imply_v humane_a passion_n be_v attribute_v to_o god_n in_o scripture_n but_o he_o prove_v from_o multitude_n of_o scripture_n and_o reason_n draw_v from_o they_o that_o the_o divine_a nature_n be_v attribute_v to_o christ_n and_o therefore_o the_o other_o place_n which_o seem_v repugnant_a to_o it_o be_v to_o be_v interpret_v in_o a_o sense_n agreeable_a thereto_o the_o same_o course_n be_v likewise_o take_v by_o epiphanius_n against_o this_o heresy_n 5._o who_o say_v the_o christian_n way_n of_o answer_v difficulty_n be_v not_o from_o their_o own_o reason_n but_o from_o the_o scope_n and_o consequence_n of_o scripture_n 6._o and_o particular_o add_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o trinity_n be_v careful_o deliver_v in_o the_o scripture_n because_o god_n foresee_v the_o many_o heresy_n which_o will_v arise_v about_o it_o but_o never_o any_o controversy_n about_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n disturb_v the_o church_n more_o than_o that_o which_o the_o arian_n raise_v and_o if_o ever_o any_o have_v reason_n to_o think_v of_o some_o certain_a and_o infallible_a way_n of_o find_v out_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n the_o catholic_n christian_n of_o that_o age_n have_v i_o shall_v therefore_o give_v a_o account_n of_o what_o way_n the_o best_a writer_n of_o the_o church_n in_o that_o time_n take_v to_o find_v out_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n in_o the_o controvert_v place_n of_o all_o the_o writer_n against_o they_o athanasius_n have_v just_o the_o great_a esteem_n and_o petavius_n say_v that_o god_n inspire_v he_o with_o great_a skill_n in_o this_o controversy_n than_o any_o other_o before_o he_o the_o principle_n he_o go_v upon_o in_o all_o his_o dispute_n against_o the_o arian_n be_v this_o that_o our_o true_a faith_n be_v build_v upon_o the_o scripture_n so_o in_o several_a place_n of_o his_o conference_n with_o the_o arian_n and_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o epistle_n to_o jovianus_n and_o elsewhere_o therefore_o in_o the_o entrance_n of_o his_o disputation_n against_o the_o arian_n he_o advise_v all_o that_o will_v secure_v themselves_o from_o the_o imposture_n of_o heretic_n 287._o to_o study_v the_o scripture_n because_o those_o who_o be_v verse_v therein_o stand_v firm_a against_o all_o their_o assault_n but_o they_o who_o look_v only_o at_o the_o word_n without_o understand_v the_o meaning_n of_o they_o be_v easy_o seduce_v by_o they_o and_o this_o counsel_n he_o give_v after_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a have_v decree_v the_o arian_n doctrine_n to_o be_v heresy_n and_o although_o he_o say_v other_o way_n may_v be_v use_v to_o confute_v it_o yet_o because_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v more_o sufficient_a than_o all_o of_o they_o therefore_o those_o who_o will_v be_v better_o instruct_v in_o these_o thing_n i_o will_v advise_v they_o to_o be_v conversant_a in_o the_o divine_a oracle_n but_o do_v not_o the_o arian_n plead_v scripture_n as_o well_o as_o they_o how_o then_o can_v the_o scripture_n end_v this_o controversy_n which_o do_v arise_v about_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n this_o objection_n which_o be_v now_o make_v so_o much_o
of_o against_o the_o scripture_n be_v never_o so_o much_o as_o think_v of_o in_o those_o day_n or_o if_o it_o be_v be_v not_o think_v worth_a answer_v for_o they_o di●_n not_o in_o the_o least_o desert_n the_o proof_n of_o scripture_n because_o their_o adversary_n make_v use_v of_o it_o too_o but_o they_o endeavour_v to_o show_v that_o their_o adversary_n doctrine_n have_v no_o solid_a foundation_n in_o scripture_n but_o they_o have_v i.e._n that_o the_o arian_n pervert_v it_o because_o they_o do_v not_o examine_v and_o compare_v place_n as_o they_o ought_v to_o do_v but_o run_v away_o with_o a_o few_o word_n without_o consider_v the_o scope_n and_o design_n of_o they_o or_o compare_v they_o with_o place_n plain_o than_o those_o be_v which_o they_o bring_v thus_o when_o the_o arian_n object_v that_o place_n my_o father_n be_v great_a than_o i_o athanasius_n bid_v they_o compare_v that_o with_o other_o place_n such_o as_o my_o father_n and_o i_o be_v one_o etc._n and_o who_o be_v in_o the_o form_n of_o god_n think_v it_o no_o robbery_n to_o be_v equ●●_n with_o god_n and_o by_o he_o all_o thing_n be_v make_v etc._n etc._n when_o arius_n object_v to_o we_o there_o be_v but_o one_o god_n of_o who_o be_v all_o thing_n he_o tel●s_v he_o he_o ought_v to_o consider_v the_o follow_a word_n and_o one_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n by_o who_o be_v all_o thing_n from_o whence_o when_o arius_n argue_v that_o christ_n be_v only_a god_n instrument_n in_o create_a thing_n athanasius_n then_o bid_v he_o compare_v this_o place_n with_o another_o where_o it_o be_v say_v of_o who_o the_o whole_a body_n 16._o etc._n etc._n not_o bare_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d when_o the_o arian_n object_v christ_n saying_n all_o thing_n be_v deliver_v to_o i_o from_o my_o father_n athanasius_n oppose_v that_o place_n of_o st._n john_n to_o it_o by_o he_o all_o thing_n be_v make_v thus_o when_o they_o object_v several_a other_o place_n he_o constant_o have_v recourse_n to_o john_n 1._o 1_o 2_o 3._o to_o phil._n 2._o 7._o 1_o john_n 5._o 20._o and_o other_o which_o he_o think_v the_o plain_a place_n for_o christ_n eternal_a divinity_n and_o by_o these_o he_o prove_v that_o the_o other_o be_v to_o be_v interpret_v with_o a_o respect_n to_o his_o humane_a nature_n and_o the_o state_n he_o be_v in_o upon_o earth_n so_o that_o the_o great_a defender_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o trinity_n against_o the_o arian_n see_v no_o necessity_n at_o all_o of_o call_v in_o the_o assistance_n of_o any_o infallible_a guide_n to_o give_v the_o certain_a sense_n of_o scripture_n in_o these_o doubtful_a place_n but_o he_o think_v the_o scripture_n plain_a enough_o to_o all_o those_o who_o will_v impartial_o examine_v it_o and_o for_o other_o who_o wilful_o shut_v their_o eye_n no_o light_n can_v be_v great_a enough_o for_o they_o indeed_o when_o the_o arian_n call_v in_o the_o help_n of_o any_o of_o the_o ancient_a writer_n to_o justify_v their_o doctrine_n 549._o than_o athanasius_n think_v himself_o concerne●_n to_o vindicate_v they_o as_o particular_o dionysius_n of_o alexandria_n but_o as_o he_o say_v if_o they_o can_v produce_v scripture_n or_o reason_n for_o what_o they_o say_v let_v they_o do_v it_o but_o if_o not_o let_v they_o hold_v their_o peace_n thereby_o imply_v that_o these_o be_v the_o only_a considerable_a thing_n to_o be_v regard_v yet_o he_o show_v at_o large_a that_o they_o abuse_v the_o testimony_n of_o dionysius_n who_o although_o in_o his_o letter_n against_o sabellius_n he_o speak_v too_o much_o the_o other_o way_n yet_o in_o other_o of_o his_o write_n he_o sufficient_o clear_v himself_o from_o be_v a_o savourer_n of_o the_o arian_n heresy_n and_o although_o athanasius_n do_v else_o where_o say_v that_o the_o faith_n which_o the_o catholic_n church_n then_o hold_v be_v the_o faith_n of_o their_o forefather_n s●rapi_fw-la and_o descend_v from_o the_o apostle_n yet_o he_o no_o where_o say_v that_o without_o the_o help_n of_o that_o tradition_n it_o have_v be_v impossible_a to_o have_v know_v the_o certain_a sense_n of_o scripture_n much_o less_o without_o the_o infallible_a interpretation_n of_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o present_a church_n s._n hilary_n in_o his_o dispute_n against_o the_o same_o heretic_n 1._o profess_v in_o the_o beginning_n that_o his_o intention_n be_v to_o confound_v their_o rage_n and_o ignorance_n out_o of_o write_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n and_o to_o that_o end_n desire_v of_o his_o reader_n that_o they_o will_v conceive_v of_o god_n not_o according_a to_o the_o law_n of_o their_o own_o being_n but_o according_a to_o the_o greatness_n of_o what_o he_o have_v declare_v of_o himself_o for_o he_o be_v the_o best_a reader_n of_o scripture_n who_o do_v not_o bring_v his_o sense_n to_o the_o scripture_n but_o take_v it_o from_o it_o and_o do_v not_o resolve_v before_o hand_n to_o find_v that_o there_o which_o he_o conclude_v must_v be_v the_o sense_n before_o he_o read_v in_o thing_n therefore_o which_o concern_v god_n we_o must_v allow_v he_o to_o know_v himself_o best_a and_o give_v due_a reverence_n to_o his_o word_n for_o he_o be_v the_o best_a witness_n to_o himself_o who_o can_v be_v know_v but_o by_o himself_o in_o which_o word_n he_o plain_o assert_n that_o the_o foundation_n of_o our_o faith_n must_v be_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o that_o a_o free_a and_o impartial_a mind_n be_v necessary_a to_o find_v out_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n and_o after_o he_o have_v say_v in_o the_o second_o book_n that_o heresy_n arise_v from_o misunderstand_v the_o scripture_n and_o charge_v in_o his_o four_o book_n the_o arian_n particular_o with_o it_o he_o proceed_v to_o answer_v all_o the_o place_n produce_v by_o they_o out_o of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n by_o compare_v several_a place_n together_o and_o the_o antecedent_n and_o consequent_n and_o by_o these_o mean_n prove_v that_o they_o mistake_v the_o meaning_n of_o scripture_n so_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o nine_o book_n rehearse_v the_o common_a place_n which_o be_v make_v use_n of_o by_o the_o arian_n he_o say_v 9_o they_o repeat_v the_o word_n alone_o without_o inquire_v into_o the_o meaning_n or_o contexture_n of_o they_o whereas_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v to_o be_v take_v from_o the_o antecedent_n and_o consequent_n their_o fundamental_a mistake_n be_v the_o apply_v those_o thing_n to_o his_o divine_a nature_n which_o be_v speak_v of_o his_o humane_a which_o he_o make_v good_a by_o a_o particular_a examination_n of_o the_o several_a place_n in_o controversy_n the_o same_o course_n be_v take_v by_o epiphanius_n phaebadius_n and_o other_o of_o the_o ancient_a writer_n of_o the_o church_n who_o assert_v the_o eternal_a divinity_n of_o christ_n against_o the_o arian_n epiphanius_n therefore_o charge_v they_o which_o mangling_n and_o pervert_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n 50._o understand_v figurative_a expression_n literal_o and_o those_o which_o be_v intend_v in_o a_o plain_a sense_n figurative_o so_o that_o it_o be_v observable_a in_o that_o great_a controversy_n which_o disturb_v the_o church_n so_o many_o year_n which_o exercise_v the_o wit_n of_o all_o man_n in_o that_o time_n to_o find_v out_o a_o way_n to_o put_v a_o end_n to_o it_o after_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n have_v in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a declare_v what_o be_v the_o catholic_n faith_n yet_o still_o the_o controversy_n be_v manage_v about_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n and_o no_o other_o way_n make_v use_v of_o for_o find_v it_o than_o such_o as_o we_o plead_v for_o at_o this_o day_n it_o be_v a_o most_o incredible_a thing_n that_o in_o a_o time_n of_o so_o violent_a contention_n so_o horrible_a confusion_n so_o scandalous_a division_n in_o the_o christian_a church_n none_o of_o the_o catholic_n bishop_n shall_v once_o suggest_v this_o admirable_a expedient_a of_o infallibility_n but_o this_o palladium_n be_v not_o then_o fall_v down_o from_o heaven_n or_o if_o it_o be_v it_o be_v keep_v so_o secret_a that_o not_o one_o of_o the_o writer_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n in_o that_o busy_a and_o dispute_a age_n discover_v the_o least_o knowledge_n of_o it_o unless_o it_o be_v say_v that_o of_o all_o time_n it_o be_v then_o least_o fit_a to_o talk_v of_o infallibility_n in_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n when_o they_o so_o frequent_o in_o council_n contradict_v each_o other_o the_o synodical_a book_n in_o the_o new_a tome_n of_o the_o council_n 84._o reckon_v up_o 31._o several_a council_n of_o bishop_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o arian_n controversy_n whereof_o near_o 20._o be_v for_o the_o arian_n and_o the_o rest_n against_o they_o if_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v in_o this_o time_n to_o be_v take_v from_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o
shall_v be_v leave_v in_o a_o church_n if_o we_o deny_v infallibility_n other_o disease_n may_v be_v cure_v but_o natural_a incapacity_n can_v 2._o not_o the_o make_v scripture_n plain_a to_o all_o sober_a enquirer_n in_o matter_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n this_o be_v that_o principle_n which_o n._n o._n make_v such_o horrible_a outcries_a about_o as_o though_o it_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o all_o the_o heresy_n and_o sect_n in_o the_o world_n this_o he_o say_v make_v all_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n useless_a for_o what_o need_n be_v there_o of_o bishop_n presbyter_n or_o any_o ecclesiastical_a pastor_n among_o protestant_n as_o to_o the_o office_n of_o teach_v or_o expound_v these_o write_n 15._o if_o these_o in_o all_o necessary_n be_v clear_a to_o all_o person_n who_o desire_v to_o know_v the_o meaning_n of_o they_o but_o not_o content_a with_o this_o modest_a charge_n in_o comparison_n in_o another_o treatise_n he_o make_v this_o the_o very_a height_n of_o fanaticism_n 93._o in_o spite_n of_o mother_n juliana_n and_o their_o legendary_a saint_n because_o forsooth_o this_o be_v to_o ground_v all_o our_o religion_n upon_o our_o own_o fancy_n inquire_v into_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o divine_a revelation_n and_o therefore_o good_a man_n seem_v trouble_v at_o it_o 96._o that_o he_o can_v by_o no_o mean_n in_o the_o world_n absolve_v i_o from_o be_v not_o only_o a_o fanatic_a but_o a_o teacher_n of_o fanaticism_n in_o earnest_n it_o be_v happy_o find_v out_o to_o return_v this_o heavy_a charge_n back_o upon_o myself_o with_o so_o much_o rage_n and_o violence_n for_o although_o n._n o._n be_v a_o modest_a man_n yet_o s._n c._n be_v a_o mere_a fury_n for_o not_o mere_o fanaticism_n 92._o pure_a putid_v fanaticism_n follow_v from_o this_o principle_n fanaticism_n without_o vizard_n or_o disguise_n 89._o and_o all_o this_o demonstrative_o prove_v from_o this_o principle_n but_o all_o our_o church_n be_v immediate_o go_v with_o it_o man_n may_v talk_v of_o dangerous_a plot_n for_o undermine_v and_o blow_v up_o of_o town_n and_o fort_n and_o parliament_n but_o what_o be_v all_o those_o to_o the_o blow_v up_o a_o whole_a church_n at_o once_o for_o since_o that_o train_n of_o my_o principle_n have_v be_v lay_v nothing_o like_o the_o old_a church_n of_o engl●nd_n have_v be_v see_v it_o be_v true_a there_o be_v the_o same_o bishop_n the_o same_o authority_n the_o same_o liturgy_n and_o ceremony_n the_o same_o ●●●achers_n and_o officer_n that_o be_v but_o what_o be_v all_o these_o to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n for_o from_o hence_o it_o follow_v if_o we_o believe_v s._n c._n that_o the_o governor_n of_o our_o church_n have_v no_o authority_n to_o teach_v truth_n 99_o or_o to_o condemn_v error_n and_o a●l_o the_o people_n be_v become_v prophet_n and_o all_o their_o article_n constitution_n and_o ordinance_n have_v be_v compose_v and_o enjoin_v by_o a_o usurp_a authority_n very_o sad_a consequence_n true_o but_o like_o deep_a plot_n they_o lie_v very_o far_o out_o of_o sight_n for_o to_o my_o understanding_n not_o one_o of_o these_o dismal_a thing_n follow_v any_o more_o from_o my_o principle_n than_o from_o prove_v that_o s._n c._n and_o n._n o._n both_o stand_v for_o the_o same_o person_n which_o will_v easy_o appear_v to_o any_o one_o ●●e_v that_o will_v but_o consider_v 1._o the_o intention_n of_o those_o principle_n 2._o the_o just_a consequence_n of_o they_o 1._o the_o intention_n of_o those_o principle_n which_o be_v plain_o to_o lay_v down_o the_o foundation_n of_o a_o christian_n faith_n live_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o our_o church_n which_o be_v express_v in_o as_o perspicuous_a term_n before_o they_o as_o may_v be_v and_o to_o show_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n infallibility_n be_v no_o necessary_a foundation_n of_o faith_n now_o this_o be_v the_o design_n of_o those_o principle_n to_o what_o purpose_n shall_v i_o have_v go_v about_o therein_o to_o have_v state_v the_o nature_n and_o bound_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o particular_a church_n i_o no_o where_o in_o the_o least_o exclude_v the_o use_n of_o all_o mean_n and_o due_a help_n of_o guide_n and_o other_o for_o the_o understanding_n the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n and_o i_o no_o where_o mention_n they_o because_o my_o business_n be_v only_o about_o the_o foundation_n of_o faith_n and_o whether_o infallibility_n be_v necessary_a for_o that_o or_o no_o if_o i_o have_v prove_v it_o be_v not_o i_o have_v gain_v my_o design_n for_o then_o those_o who_o deny_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n infallibility_n may_v never_o the_o less_o have_v a_o sure_a foundation_n or_o solid_a principle_n to_o build_v their_o faith_n upon_o now_o to_o what_o purpose_n in_o a_o account_n of_o the_o principle_n of_o faith_n shall_v i_o mention_v those_o thing_n which_o we_o do_v not_o build_v our_o faith_n upon_o i_o mean_v the_o authority_n of_o our_o guide_n for_o although_o we_o allow_v they_o all_o the_o usefulness_n of_o help_n yet_o those_o be_v no_o more_o to_o be_v mention_v in_o the_o principle_n of_o resolve_v faith_n than_o eulid_n master_n be_v to_o be_v mention_v in_o his_o demonstration_n for_o although_o he_o may_v learn_v his_o skill_n from_o he_o yet_o the_o force_n of_o his_o demonstration_n do_v not_o depend_v upon_o his_o authority_n i_o hope_v it_o now_o appear_v how_o far_o i_o be_o from_o make_v church-authority_n useless_a but_o i_o still_o say_v our_o faith_n be_v not_o to_o be_v resolve_v into_o it_o and_o therefore_o be_v not_o to_o be_v reckon_v as_o a_o principle_n or_o foundation_n of_o faith_n to_o that_o end_n it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o prove_v that_o man_n in_o the_o due_a use_n of_o mean_n who_o i_o call_v sober_a enquirer_n may_v without_o any_o infallible_a church_n believe_v the_o scripture_n and_o understand_v what_o be_v necessary_a to_o their_o salvation_n herein_o if_o this_o may_v be_v than_o i_o say_v it_o follow_v princ._n 15._o that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o necessity_n suppose_v of_o any_o infallible_a society_n of_o man_n either_o to_o attest_v or_o explain_v these_o write_n among_o christian_n not_o one_o word_n that_o take_v away_o the_o use_n of_o authority_n in_o the_o church_n but_o only_o of_o infallibility_n but_o it_o may_v be_v say_v that_o although_o it_o may_v not_o be_v my_o intention_n yet_o it_o may_v be_v the_o just_a consequence_n of_o the_o principle_n themselves_o 2._o therefore_o i_o shall_v now_o prove_v that_o no_o consequence_n draw_v from_o they_o can_v infer_v this_o for_o what_o if_o all_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v plain_a in_o scripture_n to_o all_o that_o sincere_o endeavour_v to_o understand_v they_o do_v it_o hence_o follow_v that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o just_a authority_n in_o a_o church_n no_o use_n of_o person_n to_o instruct_v other_o must_v all_o the_o people_n become_v prophet_n and_o no_o bound_n be_v set_v to_o the_o liberty_n of_o prophesy_v these_o be_v bad_a consequence_n but_o the_o comfort_n be_v they_o be_v not_o true_a if_o i_o shall_v say_v that_o the_o necessary_a rule_n for_o a_o man_n health_n be_v so_o plain_o lay_v down_o by_o hypocrates_n that_o every_o one_o that_o will_v take_v the_o pain_n may_v understand_v they_o do_v this_o make_v the_o whole_a profession_n of_o physic_n useless_a or_o license_v every_o man_n to_o practice_v physic_n that_o will_v or_o make_v it_o needless_a to_o have_v any_o professor_n in_o that_o faculty_n when_o the_o philosopher_n of_o old_a do_v so_o frequent_o inculcate_v that_o the_o necessary_n for_o life_n be_v few_o and_o easy_a do_v this_o make_v all_o political_a government_n useless_a and_o give_v every_o man_n power_n to_o do_v what_o he_o please_v man_n of_o any_o common_a understanding_n will_v distinguish_v between_o the_o necessary_n of_o life_n and_o civil_a society_n so_o will_v any_o one_o but_o s._n c._n or_o n._n o._n of_o the_o necessary_n to_o salvation_n and_o to_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n for_o man_n must_v be_v consider_v first_o as_o christian_n and_o then_o as_o christian_n unite_v together_o as_o in_o civil_a society_n they_o be_v to_o be_v consider_v first_o as_o man_n and_o then_o as_o cives_fw-la to_o say_v that_o a_o man_n have_v all_o that_o be_v necessary_a to_o preserve_v his_o life_n as_o a_o man_n do_v not_o overthrow_v the_o constitution_n of_o a_o society_n although_o it_o imply_v that_o he_o may_v live_v without_o it_o so_o when_o man_n be_v consider_v bare_o as_o christian_n no_o more_o ought_v to_o be_v think_v necessary_a for_o they_o as_o such_o but_o what_o make_v they_o capable_a of_o salvation_n but_o if_o we_o consider_v they_o as_o join_v together_o in_o a_o christian_a society_n than_o many_o other_o thing_n be_v necessary_a for_o that_o end_n for_o then_o there_o must_v be_v authority_n in_o some_o and_o subjection_n in_o other_o
of_o our_o church_n but_o say_v t._n c._n the_o subscribe_v the_o book_n of_o homily_n as_o contain_v a_o godly_a and_o wholesome_a doctrine_n do_v not_o evince_v that_o every_o particular_a doctrine_n contain_v in_o it_o be_v such_o be_v it_o so_o but_o i_o hope_v it_o do_v evince_v that_o the_o subscriber_n do_v not_o think_v the_o main_a doctrine_n of_o any_o one_o homily_n to_o be_v false_a sure_o there_o be_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o difference_n between_o some_o particular_a passage_n and_o expression_n in_o these_o homily_n and_o that_o which_o be_v the_o main_a design_n and_o foundation_n of_o any_o one_o of_o they_o but_o in_o this_o case_n we_o be_v to_o observe_v that_o they_o who_o deny_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v guilty_a of_o idolatry_n do_v not_o only_o look_v on_o the_o charge_n as_o false_a but_o as_o of_o dangerous_a consequence_n and_o therefore_o although_o man_n may_v subscribe_v to_o a_o book_n in_o general_a as_o contain_v wholesome_a and_o godly_a doctrine_n though_o they_o be_v not_o so_o certain_a of_o the_o truth_n of_o every_o passage_n in_o it_o yet_o they_o can_v never_o do_v it_o with_o a_o good_a conscience_n if_o they_o believe_v any_o great_a and_o considerable_a part_n of_o the_o doctrine_n therein_o contain_v to_o be_v false_a and_o dangerous_a such_o a_o subscription_n will_v be_v as_o apparent_o shuffle_n and_o dishonest_a as_o be_v the_o evasion_n of_o this_o testimony_n which_o t._n g._n make_v use_n of_o for_o want_v of_o a_o better_a i_o shall_v in_o the_o next_o place_n show_v the_o current_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n ever_o since_o the_o reformation_n to_o have_v be_v agreeable_a to_o this_o homily_n of_o the_o peril_n of_o idolatry_n in_o the_o injunction_n publish_v by_o k._n edward_n vi_o a._n d._n 1547._o the_o extirpation_n of_o popery_n be_v call_v the_o suppression_n of_o idolatry_n and_o superstition_n in_o the_o second_o year_n of_o edward_n vi_o archbishop_n cranmer_n publish_v his_o article_n of_o visitation_n whereof_o the_o 6._o and_o the_o last_o be_v about_o the_o take_n away_o image_n picture_n and_o all_o other_o monument_n of_o feign_a miracle_n pilgrimage_n idolatry_n and_o superstition_n in_o the_o second_o liturgy_n by_o edward_n vi_o after_o the_o communion_n be_v a_o rubric_n annex_v in_o which_o the_o adoration_n of_o the_o host_n be_v express_o call_v idolatry_n this_o be_v that_o very_a rubric_n of_o which_o t._n g._n according_a to_o his_o excellent_a skill_n in_o the_o office_n of_o our_o church_n 214._o say_v it_o be_v not_o yet_o more_o than_o a_o dozen_o year_n since_o it_o be_v insert_v into_o the_o communion_n book_n which_o he_o may_v have_v find_v above_o a_o 100_o year_n before_o in_o the_o book_n of_o edward_n vi._n in_o the_o injunction_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n a._n d._n 1559._o art_n 2._o and_o 23._o all_o shrine_n table_n picture_n etc._n etc._n be_v command_v to_o be_v take_v away_o and_o destroy_v and_o all_o other_o monument_n of_o feign_a miracle_n idolatry_n and_o superstition_n and_o that_o 〈◊〉_d may_v not_o think_v it_o be_v only_o a_o sudden_a hea●_n at_o the_o first_o reformation_n which_o make_v the●_n charge_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n with_o idolatry_n long_o after_o in_o a_o form_n of_o thanksgiving_n in_o the_o 37._o of_o queen_n elizabeth_n a._n d._n 1594._o popery_n be_v call_v that_o idolatrous_a religion_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o beginning_n of_o her_o reign_n in_o the_o excellent_a apology_n for_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o i_o desire_v he_o or_o any_o one_o else_o 〈◊〉_d produce_v any_o one_o bishop_n or_o divine_a of_o not●_n in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n who_o during_o all_o h●r_a reign_n do_v deny_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v guilty_a of_o idolatry_n but_o why_o then_o be_v it_o not_o insert_v in_o the_o 39_o article_n in_o which_o t._n g._n observe_v 19●_n the_o adoration_n of_o image_n be_v not_o reject_v as_o idolatry_n but_o only_o as_o a_o fond_a thing_n vain_o invent_v nor_o as_o repugnant_a to_o the_o plain_a word_n of_o scripture_n but_o as_o be_v rather_o repugnant_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o plain_o give_v we_o to_o understand_v that_o they_o have_v do_v their_o endeavour_n to_o find_v a_o command_n but_o can_v not_o a_o most_o ingenious_a criticism_n when_o himself_o and_o all_o other_o of_o their_o divine_n yield_v that_o adoration_n of_o image_n which_o our_o church_n charge_v they_o with_o art_n 22._o viz._n not_o bare_o worship_v but_o adoration_n of_o image_n to_o be_v idolatry_n and_o plain_o repugnant_a to_o scripture_n be_v the_o composer_n of_o our_o article_n so_o senseless_a as_o not_o to_o think_v idolatry_n repugnant_a to_o scripture_n or_o not_o to_o think_v adoration_n of_o image_n to_o be_v idolatry_n or_o not_o to_o think_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n guilty_a of_o it_o when_o the_o article_n say_v the_o romish_a doctrine_n concern_v worship_v and_o adoration_n as_o well_o of_o image_n as_o of_o relic_n &_o c_o it_o be_v not_o mere_o the_o practice_n use_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o their_o very_a doctrine_n concern_v adoration_n of_o image_n which_o be_v here_o charge_v and_o can_v any_o church_n teach_v adoration_n of_o image_n and_o not_o be_v guilty_a of_o idolatry_n and_o for_o his_o criticism_n about_o be_v rather_o repugnant_a it_o have_v be_v utter_o lose_v if_o he_o have_v look_v into_o the_o latin_a article_n where_o the_o word_n be_v immo_fw-la verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la contradicit_fw-la whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o rather_o be_v not_o use_v as_o a_o term_n of_o diminution_n but_o of_o a_o more_o vehement_a affirmation_n i_o now_o come_v to_o the_o exception_n he_o take_v to_o the_o particular_a testimony_n i_o produce_v of_o the_o most_o eminent_a bishop_n and_o divine_n of_o our_o church_n ever_o since_o the_o reformation_n who_o have_v all_o concur_v in_o this_o charge_n of_o idolatry_n two_o part_n in_o three_o he_o except_v against_o as_o incompetent_a witness_n in_o the_o case_n how_o few_o of_o the_o jury_n will_v any_o malefactor_n allow_v if_o such_o frivolous_a exception_n may_v serve_v his_o turn_n the_o two_o first_o he_o except_v against_o be_v the_o two_o arch-bishop_n whitgift_n and_o abbot_n as_o puritanical_o incline_v but_o as_o it_o unhappy_o fall_v out_o one_o of_o they_o be_v never_o mention_v by_o i_o and_o the_o other_o never_o till_o now_o suspect_v for_o a_o puritan_n the_o abbot_n i_o mention_v be_v not_o george_n abbot_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n but_z robert_z abbot_z bishop_n of_o salisbury_n and_o it_o be_v the_o first_o time_n we_o ever_o hear_v that_o a_o bishop_n of_o salisbury_n be_v suspend_v from_o his_o metropolitical_a jurisdiction_n but_o they_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v a_o faculty_n of_o do_v great_a wonder_n with_o five_o word_n than_o change_a a_o bishop_n into_o a_o archbishop_n i_o hope_v he_o understand_v the_o church_n he_o be_v of_o better_a than_o that_o he_o have_v leave_v or_o else_o we_o be_v like_a to_o have_v a_o sad_a account_n of_o history_n from_o he_o but_o why_o i_o beseech_v you_o after_o all_o his_o zeal_n and_o indefatigable_a pain_n for_o the_o church_n of_o england_n must_v archbishop_n whitgift_n be_v throw_v away_o to_o the_o puritan_n if_o he_o have_v prove_v t._n c._n at_o the_o same_o time_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n there_o may_v have_v be_v some_o reason_n to_o suspect_v whitgift_n to_o have_v be_v of_o the_o puritan_n side_n for_o all_o the_o world_n know_v they_o be_v grea●_n adversary_n on_o that_o very_a account_n of_o th●_n puritan_n cause_n but_o be_v not_o whitgi●●_n for_o the_o lambeth_n article_n and_o wh●_n then_o be_v the_o dominican_n puritan_n and_o no_o papist_n if_o your_o church_n may_v hau●_n liberty_n not_o to_o determine_v those_o nice_a point_n why_o may_v not_o we_o and_o so_o both_o party_n remain_v of_o our_o church_n as_o long_o as_o they_o contradict_v no_o receive_a article_n among_o we_o but_o the_o lambeth-article_n be_v neve●_n intend_v for_o any_o more_o than_o as_o respons●_n prudentum_fw-la to_o silence_n dispute_v in_o the_o university_n and_o i_o believe_v none_o of_o the_o puritan_n party_n after_o that_o take_v archbishop_n whitgift_n to_o be_v a_o patron_n of_o thei●_n cause_n but_o if_o these_o will_v not_o serve_v his_o turn_n 〈◊〉_d have_v other_o ready_a who_o for_o mere_a sham●_n he_o will_v not_o say_v be_v puritan_n or_o puritanical_o incline_v and_o the_o first_o of_o these_o be_v a_o archbishop_n too_o and_o that_o be_v archbishop_n bancroft_n and_o if_o he_o be_v cast_v out_o for_o a_o puritan_n sure_o there_o never_o be_v any_o bishop_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o his_o sermon_n preach_v at_o paul_n cross_n on_o 1_o john_n 4._o 1._o he_o have_v these_o word_n speak_v of_o the_o papist_n 30._o the_o popish_a false_a prophet_n
infallible_a assistance_n to_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n in_o all_o age_n for_o the_o conduct_n of_o those_o who_o live_v in_o it_o for_o if_o he_o have_v not_o my_o adversary_n can_v deny_v but_o the_o principle_n lay_v down_o by_o i_o must_v hold_v for_o in_o case_n there_o be_v no_o infallibility_n in_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n every_o one_o must_v be_v leave_v to_o the_o use_n of_o his_o own_o understanding_n proceed_v in_o the_o best_a manner_n to_o find_v out_o what_o the_o will_n of_o god_n be_v in_o order_n to_o salvation_n we_o do_v not_o now_o dispute_v concern_v the_o best_a help_n for_o a_o person_n to_o make_v use_n of_o in_o a_o matter_n of_o this_o nature_n but_o the_o question_n be_v whether_o a_o man_n ought_v to_o resign_v his_o own_o judgement_n to_o that_o of_o the_o church_n which_o pretend_v to_o be_v infallible_a as_o to_o all_o necessary_n for_o salvation_n or_o suppose_v no_o such_o infallibility_n whether_o a_o person_n use_v his_o faculty_n in_o the_o best_a manner_n about_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n with_o the_o help_n of_o divine_a grace_n may_v not_o have_v sufficient_a certainty_n thereby_o what_o thing_n be_v require_v of_o he_o in_o order_n to_o happiness_n hereby_o i_o exclude_v nothing_o that_o may_v tend_v to_o the_o right_a use_n of_o a_o man_n understanding_n in_o these_o thing_n whether_o it_o be_v the_o direction_n of_o pastor_n the_o decree_n of_o council_n the_o sense_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n or_o the_o care_n industry_n and_o sincerity_n of_o the_o enquirer_n but_o suppose_v all_o these_o whether_o by_o not_o believe_v the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v infallible_a the_o foundation_n of_o this_o person_n faith_n can_v be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o tremble_a quick_v and_o as_o n._n o._n speak_v in_o his_o preface_n only_o from_o the_o suppose_v a_o errability_n in_o the_o guide_n of_o god_n church_n and_o a_o little_a after_o he_o lay_v down_o that_o as_o his_o fundamental_a principle_n that_o the_o only_a certain_a way_n not_o to_o be_v mislead_v will_v be_v the_o submit_v our_o internal_a assent_n and_o belief_n to_o church_n authority_n or_o as_o he_o elsewhere_o speak_v to_o the_o infallible_a guideship_n of_o church_n ●_z 1●_n here_o then_o two_o question_n necessary_o arise_v 1._o whether_o there_o can_v be_v no_o certainty_n of_o faith_n without_o this_o infallibility_n 2._o what_o certainty_n there_o be_v of_o this_o infallibility_n 1._o whether_o there_o can_v be_v no_o certainty_n of_o faith_n without_o infallibility_n in_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n and_o submit_v our_o internal_a assent_n and_o belief_n to_o they_o for_o the_o clear_n of_o this_o we_o must_v consider_v what_o thing_n be_v agree_v upon_o between_o we_o that_o by_o they_o we_o may_v proceed_v to_o the_o resolution_n of_o this_o question_n 1._o it_o be_v i_o suppose_v agree_v that_o every_o man_n have_v in_o he_o a_o faculty_n of_o discern_v of_o truth_n and_o falsehood_n 2._o that_o this_o faculty_n must_v be_v use_v at_o least_o in_o the_o choice_n of_o infallible_a guide_n for_o otherwise_o a_o man_n must_v be_v abuse_v with_o every_o pretence_n of_o infallibility_n and_o george_n fox_n may_v as_o well_o be_v follow_v as_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n and_o to_o what_o purpose_n be_v all_o prudential_a motive_n and_o argument_n for_o infallibility_n if_o a_o man_n must_v not_o judge_v whether_o they_o be_v good_a or_o no_o i._n e._n sufficient_a to_o prove_v the_o thing_n 3._o that_o god_n be_v not_o want_v in_o necessary_n to_o the_o salvation_n of_o mankind_n 4._o that_o the_o book_n of_o scripture_n receive_v on_o both_o side_n do_v contain_v in_o they_o the_o will_n of_o god_n in_o order_n to_o salvation_n 5._o that_o all_o thing_n simple_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v contain_v therein_o which_o be_v a_o concession_n mention_v before_o these_o thing_n be_v suppose_v 5._o the_o question_n now_o be_v answer_v whether_o a_o person_n not_o rely_v on_o the_o infallibility_n of_o a_o church_n may_v not_o be_v certain_a of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v contain_v in_o those_o book_n in_o order_n to_o salvation_n for_o of_o those_o ou●_n present_a enquiry_n be_v and_o not_o about_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o more_o difficult_a and_o controvert_v place_n and_o if_o we_o can_v make_v it_o appear_v that_o man_n may_v be_v certain_a as_o to_o matter_n of_o salvation_n without_o infallibility_n let_v they_o prove_v if_o they_o can_v the_o necessity_n of_o infallibility_n for_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n but_o of_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n in_o those_o thing_n afterward_o i_o now_o inquire_v into_o the_o certainty_n man_n may_v attain_v to_o of_o the_o necessary_n to_o salvation_n in_o scripture_n and_o concern_v this_o i_o lay_v down_o this_o proposition_n although_o we_o can_v argue_v against_o any_o particular_a way_n of_o revelation_n from_o the_o necessary_a attribute_n of_o god_n 13._o yet_o such_o a_o way_n as_o writing_n be_v make_v choice_n of_o by_o he_o we_o may_v just_o say_v that_o it_o be_v repugnant_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o design_n and_o the_o wisdom_n and_o goodness_n of_o god_n to_o give_v infallible_a assistance_n to_o person_n in_o write_v his_o will_n for_o the_o benefit_n of_o mankind_n if_o those_o write_n may_v not_o be_v understand_v by_o all_o person_n who_o sincere_o endeavour_v to_o know_v the_o meaning_n of_o they_o in_o all_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v necessary_a for_o their_o salvation_n this_o principle_n 13._o he_o say_v be_v unsound_a which_o if_o he_o can_v prove_v i_o may_v have_v more_o reason_n to_o question_v it_o than_o i_o yet_o have_v and_o i_o assure_v he_o i_o expect_v no_o mean_a proof_n to_o shake_v my_o belief_n of_o a_o principle_n of_o so_o great_a importance_n to_o the_o christian_a religion_n for_o it_o be_v grant_v by_o he_o that_o all_o thing_n simple_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o book_n of_o scripture_n i_o desire_v to_o know_v whether_o thing_n simple_o necessary_a ought_v not_o to_o be_v deliver_v with_o great_a plainness_n than_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o so_o whether_o god_n appoint_v the_o evangelist_n and_o apostle_n to_o write_v these_o thing_n do_v not_o intend_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v so_o express_v as_o they_o may_v most_o easy_o be_v understand_v whether_o our_o saviour_n own_o sermon_n veer_v capable_a of_o be_v understand_v by_o those_o who_o hear_v they_o without_o some_o infallible_a interpreter_n whether_o the_o evangelist_n do_v not_o faithful_o deliver_v our_o saviour_n doctrine_n if_o they_o do_v how_o that_o come_v to_o be_v obscure_a now_o which_o be_v plain_a then_o so_o that_o either_o christ_n himself_o must_v be_v charge_v with_o not_o speak_v the_o will_n of_o god_n plain_o or_o the_o evangelist_n can_v be_v charge_v with_o not_o express_v it_o so_o there_o be_v no_o other_o book_n in_o the_o world_n that_o i_o know_v of_o that_o need_v a_o infallible_a interpreter_n and_o we_o can_v tell_v certain_o enough_o what_o any_o other_o religion_n require_v suppose_v it_o to_o be_v write_v in_o the_o same_o way_n that_o the_o christian_n be_v be_v it_o not_o possible_a for_o a_o man_n to_o be_v certain_a what_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n require_v of_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n by_o read_v the_o book_n of_o that_o law_n without_o some_o infallible_a guide_n do_v the_o ten_o commandment_n need_v a_o infallible_a comment_fw-fr or_o can_v we_o have_v now_o no_o certainty_n of_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o levitical_a law_n because_o there_o be_v no_o highpriest_n or_o sanhedrin_n to_o explain_v it_o and_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a to_o understand_v the_o necessary_n of_o that_o dark_a dispensation_n in_o comparison_n with_o the_o gospel_n be_v o●r_a eye_n now_o blind_v with_o too_o much_o light_n be_v not_o christianity_n therefore_o high_o recommend_v to_o we_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n because_o of_o the_o clearness_n and_o perspicuity_n wherein_o the_o doctrine_n and_o precept_n thereof_o be_v deliver_v and_o yet_o after_o all_o this_o can_v the_o most_o necessary_a part_n of_o it_o he_o understand_v by_o those_o who_o sincere_o endeavour_v to_o understand_v they_o by_o which_o sincere_a endeavour_n we_o be_v so_o far_o from_o exclude_v any_o useful_a help_n that_o we_o always_o suppose_v they_o the_o s●m_n then_o of_o what_o he_o be_v to_o confute_v be_v this_o that_o although_o the_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n do_v deliver_v the_o mind_n of_o god_n to_o the_o world_n in_o their_o write_n in_o order_n to_o the_o salvation_n of_o mankind_n although_o they_o be_v inspire_v by_o a_o infinite_a wisdom_n for_o this_o end_n although_o all_o thing_n simple_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v contain_v in_o their_o write_n although_o a_o person_n use_v his_o sincere_a endeavour_n by_o all_o moral_a help_n and_o the_o
the_o follow_v of_o tyranny_n which_o we_o complain_v of_o be_v the_o two_o fair_a plea_n for_o their_o union_n i_o ever_o meet_v with_o but_o this_o be_v not_o a_o place_n to_o examine_v the_o pretence_n to_o unity_n on_o both_o side_n that_o i_o have_v at_o large_a do_v in_o a_o whole_a chapter_n in_o the_o late_a book_n and_o if_o n._n o._n have_v intend_v any_o thing_n to_o purpose_n against_o i_o on_o this_o subject_n he_o ought_v much_o rather_o to_o have_v fall_v on_o a_o just_a discourse_n than_o two_o such_o lame_a clause_n as_o he_o make_v these_o to_o be_v by_o his_o citation_n of_o they_o and_o when_o he_o do_v that_o he_o may_v hear_v more_o of_o this_o subject_a in_o the_o mean_a time_n infallibility_n be_v our_o business_n and_o therefore_o i_o proceed_v to_o the_o three_o argument_n make_v use_v of_o by_o n._n o._n for_o the_o proof_n of_o infallibility_n in_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n 9_o which_o be_v from_o parity_n of_o reason_n reason_n because_o i_o say_v 13._o that_o it_o be_v repugnant_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o design_n and_o the_o wisdom_n and_o goodness_n of_o god_n to_o give_v infallible_a assurance_n to_o person_n in_o write_v his_o will_n for_o the_o benefit_n of_o mankind_n if_o those_o write_n may_v not_o be_v understand_v by_o all_o person_n who_o sincere_o endeavour_v to_o know_v the_o meaning_n of_o they_o in_o all_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v necessary_a to_o their_o salvation_n from_o hence_o he_o infer_v that_o if_o every_o christian_a may_v become_v thus_o infallible_a in_o necessary_n from_o 1._o a_o clear_a rule_n 2._o a_o due_a industry_n use_v 3._o and_o a_o certainty_n that_o it_o be_v so_o use_v may_v not_o the_o church-governor_n still_o much_o rather_o be_v allow_v infallible_a and_o so_o retain_v still_o their_o infallible_a guideship_n and_o the_o people_n also_o the_o more_o clear_a the_o rule_n of_o faith_n be_v prove_v to_o be_v the_o more_o secure_o be_v refer_v to_o their_o direction_n and_o have_v we_o not_o all_o reason_n to_o presume_v that_o the_o chief_a guide_n of_o the_o church_n even_o a_o general_n council_n of_o they_o or_o if_o it_o be_v but_o a_o major_a part_n of_o this_o council_n it_o be_v sufficient_a in_o their_o consults_z concern_v a_o point_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n deliver_v in_o scripture_n use_v at_o least_o so_o much_o endeavour_n for_o more_o need_v not_o as_o a_o plain_a rustic_a do_v to_o understand_v the_o meaning_n of_o it_o and_o also_o the_o like_a sincerity_n for_o what_o they_o define_v for_o other_o they_o define_v for_o themselves_o also_o and_o their_o salvation_n be_v as_o much_o concern_v as_o any_o other_o man_n be_v in_o their_o mistake_n and_o next_o why_o may_v not_o these_o governor_n upon_o such_o certainty_n of_o a_o sincere_a endeavour_n and_o clearness_n of_o the_o rule_n take_v upon_o they_o to_o define_v these_o point_n and_o enjoin_v a_o assent_n to_o and_o belief_n of_o they_o to_o their_o subject_n especial_o since_o it_o be_v affirm_v that_o all_o those_o from_o who_o they_o require_v such_o obedience_n if_o they_o please_v to_o use_v a_o sincere_a endeavour_n may_v be_v certain_a thereof_o as_o well_o as_o they_o and_o be_v we_o not_o here_o again_o arrive_v at_o church-infallibility_a if_o not_o from_o extraordinary_a divine_a assistance_n only_o sincere_a endeavour_n be_v suppose_v and_o thus_o do_v not_o his_o conditional_a infallibility_n of_o particular_a person_n in_o necessary_n the_o condition_n be_v so_o easy_a necessary_o infer_v a_o moral_a impossibility_n of_o the_o church_n err_v in_o they_o especial_o those_o necessary_n be_v contract_v to_o the_o apostle_n creed_n as_o it_o be_v by_o some_o to_o lay_v open_a the_o weakness_n of_o this_o discourse_n which_o appear_v fair_a and_o plausible_a at_o first_o view_n i_o shall_v give_v a_o account_n of_o these_o two_o thing_n 1._o what_o infallibility_n i_o attribute_v to_o private_a person_n 2._o how_o far_o the_o parity_n of_o reason_n will_v extend_v to_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n 1._o as_o to_o the_o infallibility_n by_o i_o attribute_v to_o private_a person_n no_o such_o thing_n can_v be_v infer_v from_o my_o word_n and_o i_o wish_v n._n o._n will_v have_v keep_v to_o my_o own_o expression_n and_o not_o foist_v in_o that_o term_n of_o infallibility_n without_o which_o all_o his_o discourse_n will_v have_v betray_v its_o own_o weakness_n for_o take_v the_o term_n which_o i_o lay_v down_o and_o apply_v they_o to_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n and_o see_v what_o a_o mighty_a infallibility_n spring_v from_o they_o for_o if_o it_o be_v repugnant_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o design_n and_o to_o the_o wisdom_n and_o goodness_n of_o god_n to_o give_v infallible_a assurance_n to_o person_n in_o write_v his_o will_n for_o the_o benefit_n of_o mankind_n if_o those_o write_n may_v not_o be_v understand_v by_o all_o person_n who_o sincere_o endeavour_v to_o know_v the_o meaning_n of_o they_o in_o all_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v necessary_a for_o their_o salvation_n how_o do_v it_o hence_o follow_v that_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n must_v be_v infallible_a in_o teach_v matter_n of_o faith_n if_o i_o have_v assert_v that_o particular_a person_n be_v infallible_a in_o determine_v what_o be_v true_a and_o what_o not_o then_o i_o grant_v the_o argument_n will_v have_v much_o more_o hold_v for_o those_o who_o office_n it_o be_v to_o guide_v and_o direct_v other_o but_o what_o he_o mean_v by_o man_n be_v infallible_a in_o necessary_n i_o do_v not_o well_o understand_v for_o it_o be_v capable_a of_o three_o several_a meaning_n 1._o that_o either_o man_n be_v infallible_a in_o judge_v of_o necessary_n to_o salvation_n 2._o or_o that_o man_n be_v infallible_a in_o teach_v other_o what_o be_v necessary_n to_o salvation_n or_o 3_o that_o man_n be_v infallible_a in_o believe_v such_o thing_n as_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n i._n e._n that_o such_o be_v the_o goodness_n of_o god_n and_o the_o clearness_n of_o scripture_n that_o no_o man_n who_o sincere_o desire_v to_o know_v what_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n shall_v be_v deceive_v therein_o and_o what_o be_v this_o any_o more_o than_o to_o assert_v that_o god_n will_v not_o be_v want_v in_o necessary_n to_o mankind_n and_o although_o i_o know_v no_o reason_n for_o use_v the_o term_n of_o infallibility_n thus_o apply_v yet_o the_o thing_n itself_o i_o assert_v in_o that_o sense_n but_o in_o neither_o of_o the_o other_o and_o what_o now_o can_v be_v infer_v from_o hence_o by_o a_o parity_n of_o reason_n but_o that_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n suppose_v the_o same_o sincerity_n shall_v enjoy_v the_o same_o privilege_n which_o i_o know_v none_o ever_o deny_v they_o but_o what_o be_v this_o to_o their_o infallibility_n in_o teach_v all_o matter_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v the_o only_a thing_n to_o be_v prove_v by_o he_o if_o he_o can_v prove_v this_o as_o necessary_a for_o the_o salvation_n of_o mankind_n as_o the_o other_o be_v than_o he_o will_v do_v something_o to_o his_o purpose_n but_o not_o otherwise_o so_o that_o all_o this_o discourse_n proceed_v upon_o a_o very_a false_a way_n of_o reason_v from_o believe_v to_o teach_v and_o from_o necessary_n to_o salvation_n to_o all_o matter_n of_o faith_n which_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v propose_v to_o man_n 2._o but_o may_v we_o not_o infer_v that_o if_o god_n will_v not_o be_v want_v to_o particular_a person_n in_o matter_n necessary_a to_o their_o salvation_n much_o less_o will_v he_o be_v want_v to_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n in_o all_o matter_n of_o faith_n no_o certain_o unless_o it_o be_v prove_v that_o their_o guidance_n be_v the_o only_a mean_n whereby_o man_n can_v understand_v what_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n which_o be_v utter_o deny_v by_o we_o god_n have_v otherwise_o provide_v for_o that_o by_o give_v so_o clear_a a_o rule_n in_o matter_n necessary_a that_o no_o man_n who_o sincere_o endeavour_v to_o know_v such_o thing_n shall_v fail_v therein_o but_o will_v not_o the_o same_o sincerity_n in_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n extend_v to_o their_o know_v and_o declare_v all_o matter_n of_o faith_n this_o be_v a_o thing_n possible_a and_o suppose_v god_n have_v entrust_v they_o with_o the_o infallible_a delivery_n of_o all_o matter_n of_o faith_n be_v not_o to_o be_v question_v but_o that_o be_v the_o thing_n still_o in_o dispute_n and_o be_v not_o to_o be_v suppose_v without_o prove_v it_o by_o plain_a evidence_n from_o those_o book_n which_o be_v agree_v on_o both_o side_n to_o contain_v the_o will_n of_o god_n beside_o that_o no_o man_n that_o be_v acquaint_v with_o the_o proceed_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n will_v see_v reason_n to_o be_v over-confident_a of_o the_o
sincerity_n of_o council_n so_o palpable_o influence_v by_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n as_o that_o be_v but_o however_o be_v it_o not_o fit_a in_o these_o matter_n that_o particular_a person_n shall_v rather_o yield_v to_o the_o guidance_n of_o other_o than_o to_o the_o conduct_n of_o their_o own_o reason_n which_o be_v n._n oh_o far_a argument_n in_o this_o matter_n viz._n that_o a_o fallibility_n be_v suppose_v it_o be_v more_o fit_v to_o follow_v prudent_a and_o experience_a though_o fallible_a person_n direction_n rather_o than_o our_o own_o to_o this_o i_o answer_v in_o these_o follow_a particular_n 1._o that_o god_n have_v entrust_v every_o man_n with_o a_o faculty_n of_o discern_a truth_n and_o falsehood_n 10._o suppose_v that_o there_o be_v no_o person_n in_o the_o world_n to_o direct_v or_o guide_v he_o church_n for_o without_o this_o there_o be_v no_o capacity_n in_o mankind_n to_o be_v instruct_v in_o matter_n of_o religion_n and_o it_o be_v to_o no_o purpose_n to_o offer_v any_o thing_n to_o man_n to_o be_v believe_v or_o to_o persuade_v they_o to_o embrace_v any_o religion_n to_o make_v this_o plain_a i_o will_v suppose_v a_o person_n come_v to_o year_n of_o understanding_n not_o yet_o profess_v any_o particular_a religion_n to_o who_o the_o several_a religion_n in_o the_o world_n be_v propose_v by_o man_n persuade_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o they_o viz._n the_o christian_n the_o jewish_a and_o the_o mahometan_a he_o hear_v the_o several_a argument_n bring_v for_o each_o of_o they_o and_o have_v no_o great_a opinion_n of_o the_o teacher_n of_o one_o than_o of_o another_o i_o desire_v to_o know_v whether_o this_o person_n may_v not_o see_v so_o much_o of_o the_o truth_n and_o excellency_n of_o christian_a religion_n above_o the_o rest_n as_o to_o choose_v that_o and_o reject_v all_o the_o rest_n i_o hope_v no_o one_o will_v deny_v this_o now_o if_o a_o man_n do_v here_o upon_o his_o own_o judgement_n and_o reason_n choose_v the_o christian_a religion_n so_o as_o firm_o to_o believe_v it_o than_o god_n have_v give_v to_o man_n such_o a_o faculty_n of_o judge_v that_o upon_o the_o proposal_n of_o truth_n and_o falsehood_n he_o may_v embrace_v the_o true_a religion_n and_o reject_v the_o false_a and_o such_o a_o faith_n be_v acceptable_a and_o please_a to_o god_n otherwise_o no_o man_n can_v embrace_v christianity_n at_o first_o upon_o good_a ground_n 2._o this_o faculty_n be_v not_o take_v away_o nor_o man_n forbid_v the_o exercise_n of_o it_o in_o the_o choice_n of_o their_o religion_n by_o any_o principle_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n for_o our_o saviour_n himself_o appeal_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o person_n he_o endeavour_v to_o convince_v 9_o he_o make_v use_v of_o many_o argument_n to_o persuade_v they_o he_o direct_v they_o in_o the_o way_n of_o find_v out_o of_o truth_n he_o reprove_v those_o who_o will_v not_o search_v into_o the_o thing_n deliver_v to_o they_o all_o which_o be_v to_o no_o purpose_n at_o all_o if_o man_n be_v not_o to_o continue_v the_o exercise_n of_o their_o own_o judgement_n about_o these_o matter_n according_o we_o find_v the_o apostle_n appeal_n to_o the_o judgement_n of_o private_a and_o fallible_a person_n concern_v what_o they_o say_v to_o they_o 15_o although_o themselves_o be_v infallible_a and_o have_v the_o great_a authority_n over_o they_o we_o find_v they_o not_o bid_v the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n prove_v all_o thing_n and_o the_o people_n hold_v fast_o that_o which_o they_o deliver_v they_o 21._o but_o command_v they_o indifferent_o to_o prove_v all_o thing_n and_o hold_v fast_o that_o which_o be_v good_a i._n e._n what_o upon_o examination_n they_o find_v to_o be_v so_o we_o find_v those_o commend_v who_o search_v the_o scripture_n daily_o whether_o the_o thing_n propose_v to_o they_o be_v so_o or_o no._n 11._o so_o that_o we_o see_v the_o christian_a religion_n d●th_v not_o forbid_v man_n the_o exercise_n of_o that_o faculty_n of_o judge_v which_o god_n have_v give_v to_o mankind_n 3._o the_o exercise_n of_o this_o faculty_n be_v not_o to_o cease_v as●oon_o as_o man_n have_v embrace_v the_o christian_a doctrine_n for_o the_o precept_n give_v by_o the_o apostle_n do_v belong_v to_o those_o who_o be_v already_o christian_n and_o that_o concern_v the_o matter_n propose_v by_o their_o guide_n nay_o they_o be_v express_o commend_v to_o try_v and_o examine_v all_o pretence_n to_o infallibility_n and_o revelation_n upon_o this_o great_a reason_n because_o there_o shall_v be_v many_o false_a pretender_n to_o they_o belove_a believe_v not_o every_o spirit_n but_o try_v the_o spirit_n whether_o they_o be_v of_o god_n ●_o for_o many_o false_a prophet_n be_v go_v out_o into_o the_o world_n 8._o they_o be_v command_v not_o to_o believe_v any_o other_o gospel_n though_o apostle_n or_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n shall_v preach_v it_o and_o how_o shall_v they_o know_v whether_o it_o be_v another_o or_o the_o same_o if_o they_o be_v not_o to_o examine_v and_o compare_v they_o 4._o they_o be_v bid_v to_o contend_v earnest_o for_o the_o faith_n once_o deliver_v to_o the_o saint_n it_o may_v be_v a_o new_a faith_n for_o any_o thing_n they_o can_v know_v if_o they_o be_v not_o competent_a judge_n of_o what_o be_v once_o deliver_v 24._o they_o be_v frequent_o charge_v to_o beware_v of_o seducer_n and_o false_a guide_n 30._o that_o shall_v come_v in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n they_o be_v tell_v 1_o that_o there_o shall_v come_v a_o fall_n away_o and_o depart_v from_o the_o faith_n 3._o and_o that_o the_o time_n will_v come_v when_o man_n will_v not_o endure_v sound_a doctrine_n 4._o and_o shall_v turn_v away_o their_o ear_n from_o 〈◊〉_d truth_n and_o believe_v fable_n ●0_n that_o such_o shall_v come_v with_o all_o deceivableness_n of_o unrighteousness_n with_o power_n and_o sign_n and_o lie_a wonder_n to_o what_o end_n or_o purpose_n be_v all_o these_o thing_n say_v if_o man_n be_v once_o christian_n be_v no_o long_o to_o exercise_v their_o own_o judgement_n but_o deliver_v they_o up_o into_o the_o hand_n of_o their_o guide_n what_o be_v this_o but_o to_o put_v they_o under_o a_o necessity_n of_o be_v delude_v when_o their_o guide_n please_v and_o as_o our_o saviour_n say_v 14._o when_o the_o blind_a lead_v the_o blind_a both_o shall_v fall_v into_o the_o ditch_n 4._o the_o authority_n of_o guide_n in_o the_o church_n be_v not_o absolute_a and_o unlimited_a but_o confine_v within_o certain_a bound_n which_o if_o they_o transgress_v they_o be_v no_o long_o to_o be_v follow_v 8._o so_o st._n paul_n say_v if_o we_o or_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n teach_v any_o other_o gospel_n let_v he_o be_v accurse_v so_o that_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o though_o give_v the_o great_a evidence_n of_o infallibility_n be_v no_o long_o to_o be_v follow_v than_o they_o hold_v to_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ._n and_o they_o desire_v no_o more_o of_o their_o great_a disciple_n who_o they_o have_v convert_v to_o the_o christian_a faith_n 1._o than_o to_o be_v follower_n of_o they_o as_o they_o be_v of_o christ_n 14._o they_o tell_v they_o they_o have_v no_o dominion_n over_o their_o faith_n although_o they_o be_v far_o more_o assist_v with_o a_o infallible_a spirit_n than_o any_o other_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n can_v pretend_v to_o be_v ever_o since_o therefore_o no_o present_a guide_n what_o ever_o name_v they_o go_v by_o aught_o to_o usurp_v such_o a_o authority_n over_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n which_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o do_v not_o challenge_v although_o there_o be_v great_a reason_n for_o man_n to_o yield_v up_o their_o mind_n whole_o to_o their_o guidance_n we_o be_v far_o from_o deny_v all_o reasonable_a and_o just_a authority_n to_o be_v give_v to_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n but_o we_o say_v that_o their_o authority_n not_o be_v absolute_a be_v confine_v to_o some_o know_a rule_n and_o where_o there_o be_v a_o rule_n for_o they_o to_o proceed_v by_o there_o be_v a_o rule_n for_o other_o to_o judge_n of_o their_o proceed_n and_o consequent_o man_n must_v exercise_v their_o judgement_n about_o the_o matter_n they_o determine_v whether_o they_o be_v agreeable_a to_o that_o r●le_n or_o n●t_fw-la 5._o where_o the_o rule_n by_o which_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n be_v to_o proceed_v have_v determine_v nothing_o there_o we_o say_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o guide_n be_v to_o be_v submit_v unto_o for_o otherwise_o there_o will_v be_v nothing_o le●t_o wherein_o their_o authority_n can_v be_v show_v and_o other_o pay_v obedience_n to_o they_o on_o the_o account_n of_o it_o therefore_o we_o plead_v for_o the_o church_n authority_n in_o all_o matter_n of_o mere_a order_n and_o decency_n in_o indifferent_a rite_n and_o ceremony_n and_o think_v it_o a_o unreasonable_a thing_n to_o 〈◊〉_d the_o
governor_n of_o a_o christian_a society_n the_o privilege_n of_o command_v in_o thing_n which_o god_n have_v n●t_a al●_n ready_a determine_v by_o his_o own_o law_n we_o plead_v for_o the_o respect_n and_o reverence_n which_o be_v due_a to_o the_o lawful_a constitution_n o●_n the_o church_n whereof_o we_o be_v member_n and_o 〈◊〉_d the_o just_a authority_n of_o the_o guide_v it_o in_o the_o exercise_n of_o that_o power_n which_o be_v commit_v to_o the_o governor_n of_o it_o as_o the_o successor_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o their_o care_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n although_o not_o in_o their_o infallibility_n 6._o we_o allow_v a_o very_a great_a authority_n to_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n in_o the_o best_a time_n of_o christianity_n and_o look_v upon_o the_o concurrent_a sense_n of_o antiquity_n as_o a_o excellent_a mean_n to_o understand_v the_o mind_n of_o scripture_n in_o place_n otherwise_o doubtful_a and_o obscure_a we_o prosess_v a_o great_a reverence_n to_o the_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o church_n but_o especial_o when_o assemble_v in_o free_a and_o general_a council_n we_o reject_v the_o ancient_a heresy_n condemn_v in_o they_o which_o we_o the_o rather_o believe_v to_o be_v against_o the_o scripture_n because_o so_o ancient_a so_o wise_a and_o so_o great_a person_n do_v deliver_v the_o contrary_a doctrine_n not_o only_o to_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n in_o their_o own_o time_n but_o ever_o since_o the_o apostle_n nay_o we_o reject_v nothing_o that_o can_v be_v prove_v by_o a_o universal_a tradition_n from_o the_o apostolical_a time_n downward_o but_o we_o have_v so_o great_a a_o opinion_n of_o the_o wisdom_n and_o piety_n of_o those_o excellent_a guide_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o primitive_a time_n that_o we_o see_v no_o reason_n to_o have_v those_o thing_n force_v upon_o we_o now_o which_o we_o offer_v to_o prove_v to_o be_v contrary_a to_o their_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n so_o that_o the_o controversy_n between_o we_o be_v not_o about_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n but_o whether_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o apostolical_a and_o primitive_a time_n ought_v not_o to_o have_v great_a authority_n over_o we_o than_o those_o of_o the_o present_a church_n in_o thing_n wherein_o they_o contradict_v each_o other_o this_o be_v the_o true_a state_n of_o the_o controversy_n between_o we_o and_o all_o the_o clamour_n of_o reject_v the_o authority_n of_o church_n guide_n be_v vain_a and_o impertinent_a but_o we_o profess_v to_o yield_v great_a reverence_n and_o submission_n of_o mind_n to_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n than_o to_o any_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n ever_o since_o we_o be_v sure_o they_o speak_v by_o a_o infallible_a spirit_n and_o where_o they_o have_v determine_v matter_n of_o faith_n or_o practice_n we_o look_v upon_o it_o as_o arrogance_n and_o presumption_n in_o any_o other_o to_o alter_v what_o they_o have_v declare_v and_o for_o the_o age_n since_o we_o have_v a_o much_o great_a esteem_n for_o those_o near_a the_o apostolical_a time_n and_o so_o downward_o till_o ignorance_n ambition_n and_o private_a interest_n sway_v too_o much_o among_o those_o who_o be_v call_v the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o by_o the_o confession_n of_o those_o who_o be_v member_n of_o it_o at_o the_o same_o time_n which_o make_v we_o not_o to_o wonder_v that_o such_o corruption_n of_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n shall_v then_o come_v in_o but_o we_o do_v just_o wonder_v at_o the_o sincerity_n of_o those_o who_o will_v not_o have_v they_o reform_v and_o take_v away_o 7._o in_o matter_n impose_v upon_o we_o to_o believe_v or_o practice_v which_o be_v repugnant_a to_o plain_a command_n of_o scripture_n or_o the_o evidence_n offence_n or_o the_o ground_n of_o christian_a religion_n we_o assert_v that_o no_o authority_n of_o the_o present_a guide_n of_o a_o church_n be_v to_o over-rule_v our_o faith_n or_o practice_n for_o there_o be_v some_o thing_n so_o plain_a that_o no_o man_n will_v be_v guide_v by_o another_o opinion_n in_o they_o if_o any_o philosopher_n do_v think_v his_o authority_n ought_v to_o over-rule_v a_o ignorant_a man_n opinion_n in_o say_v the_o snow_n which_o he_o see_v to_o be_v white_a be_v not_o so_o i_o will_v fain_o know_v whether_o that_o man_n do_v better_a to_o believe_v his_o eye_n or_o the_o prudent_a experience_a philosopher_n i_o be_o certain_a if_o i_o destroy_v the_o evidence_n of_o sense_n i_o must_v overthrow_v the_o ground_n of_o christian_a religion_n and_o i_o be_o as_o certain_a if_o i_o believe_v that_o not_o to_o be_v bread_n which_o my_o sense_n tell_v i_o be_v so_o i_o must_v destroy_v the_o great_a evidence_n of_o sense_n and_o which_o be_v fit_a for_o i_o to_o reject_v that_o evidence_n which_o assure_v my_o christianity_n to_o i_o or_o that_o authority_n which_o by_o its_o imposition_n on_o my_o faith_n overthrow_v the_o certainty_n of_o sense_n we_o do_v not_o say_v that_o we_o be_v to_o reject_v any_o doctrine_n deliver_v in_o scripture_n which_o concern_v a_o be_v infinite_o above_o our_o understanding_n because_o we_o can_v comprehend_v all_o thing_n contain_v in_o it_o but_o in_o matter_n liable_a to_o sense_n and_o the_o proper_a object_n of_o it_o we_o must_v beg_v pardon_n if_o we_o prefer_v the_o ground_n of_o our_o common_a christianity_n before_o a_o novel_a and_o monstrous_a figment_n hatch_v in_o the_o time_n of_o ignorance_n and_o barbarism_n foster_v by_o faction_n and_o impose_v by_o tyranny_n we_o find_v no_o command_n so_o plain_a in_o scripture_n that_o we_o must_v believe_v the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n in_o all_o they_o deliver_v as_o there_o be_v that_o we_o must_v not_o worship_v image_n that_o we_o must_v pray_v with_o understanding_n that_o we_o must_v keep_v to_o our_o saviour_n institution_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n but_o if_o any_o guide_n of_o a_o church_n pretend_v to_o a_o authority_n to_o evacuate_v the_o force_n of_o these_o law_n we_o do_v not_o so_o much_o reject_v their_o authority_n as_o prefer_v god_n above_o they_o do_v that_o man_n destroy_v the_o authority_n of_o parent_n that_o refuse_v to_o obey_v they_o when_o they_o command_v he_o to_o commit_v treason_n that_o be_v our_o case_n in_o this_o matter_n suppose_v such_o guide_n of_o a_o church_n which_o otherwise_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o obey_v if_o they_o require_v thing_n contrary_a to_o a_o direct_a command_n of_o god_n must_v we_o prefer_v their_o guidance_n before_o god_n if_o they_o can_v prove_v we_o mistake_v we_o yield_v but_o till_o then_o the_o question_n be_v not_o whether_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n must_v be_v submit_v to_o rather_o than_o our_o own_o reason_n but_o whether_o god_n authority_n or_o they_o must_v be_v obey_v and_o i_o will_v glad_o know_v whether_o there_o be_v not_o some_o point_n of_o faith_n and_o some_o part_n of_o our_o duty_n so_o plain_a that_o no_o church-authority_n determine_v the_o contrary_a aught_o to_o be_v obey_v 8._o no_o absolute_a submission_n can_v be_v due_a to_o those_o guide_n of_o a_o church_n who_o have_v oppose_v and_o contradict_v each_o other_o and_o condemn_v one_o an●ther_n for_o error_n and_o here●y_n for_o then_o in_o case_n of_o absolute_a submission_n a_o man_n must_v yield_v his_o assent_n to_o contradiction_n and_o for_o the_o same_o reason_n that_o he_o be_v to_o be_v a_o catholic_n at_o one_o time_n he_o must_v be_v a_o heretic_n at_o another_o i_o hope_v the_o guide_n of_o the_o present_a church_n pretend_v to_o no_o more_o infallibility_n and_o authority_n than_o their_o predecessor_n in_o the_o same_o capacity_n with_o themselves_o have_v have_v and_o we_o say_v they_o have_v contradict_v the_o sense_n of_o those_o before_o they_o in_o the_o matter_n in_o dispute_n between_o we_o yet_o that_o be_v not_o the_o thing_n i_o now_o insist_v upon_o but_o that_o these_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n have_v declare_v each_o other_o to_o be_v fallible_a by_o condemn_v their_o opinion_n and_o practice_n and_o by_o that_o mean_n have_v make_v it_o necessary_a for_o man_n to_o believe_v those_o not_o to_o be_v infallible_a unless_o both_o part_n of_o a_o contradiction_n may_v be_v infallible_o true_a suppose_v a_o man_n live_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o prevalency_n of_o arrianism_n when_o almost_o all_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n declare_v in_o favour_n of_o it_o when_o several_a great_a council_n oppose_v and_o contradict_v that_o of_o nice_n when_o pope_n liberius_n do_v subscribe_v the_o sirmian_n confession_n and_o communicate_v with_o the_o arrian_n what_o advice_n will_v n._n o._n give_v such_o a_o one_o if_o he_o must_v not_o exercise_v his_o own_o judgement_n and_o compare_v both_o the_o doctrine_n by_o the_o rule_n of_o scripture_n must_v he_o follow_v the_o present_a guide_n even_o the_o pope_n himself_o then_o he_o must_v
here_o be_v a_o contest_v of_o right_n in_o the_o case_n antecedent_n to_o any_o duty_n of_o submission_n which_o must_v be_v better_o prove_v than_o ever_o it_o have_v yet_o be_v before_o we_o can_v allow_v any_o dispute_n how_o far_o we_o be_v to_o submit_v to_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n 2._o not_o to_o submit_v to_o those_o who_o be_v lawful_a guide_n in_o all_o thing_n they_o may_v require_v for_o our_o dispute_n be_v now_o about_o guide_n suppose_v to_o be_v fallible_a and_o they_o be_v own_v to_o be_v such_o may_v be_v suppose_v to_o require_v thing_n to_o which_o we_o be_v bind_v not_o to_o yield_v but_o the_o great_a difficulty_n now_o be_v so_o to_o state_n these_o thing_n as_o to_o show_v that_o we_o have_v reason_n not_o to_o submit_v to_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o that_o those_o of_o the_o separation_n have_v no_o reason_n not_o to_o submit_v to_o the_o guide_n of_o our_o church_n for_o that_o be_v the_o obvious_a objection_n in_o this_o case_n that_o the_o same_o pretence_n which_o be_v use_v by_o our_o church_n against_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n will_v serve_v to_o justify_v all_o the_o separation_n that_o have_v be_v or_o can_v be_v make_v from_o our_o church_n so_o my_o adversary_n n._n o._n in_o his_o preface_n say_v that_o by_o the_o principle_n we_o hold_v we_o excuse_v and_o justify_v all_o sect_n which_o have_v or_o shall_v separate_v from_o our_o church_n in_o answer_n to_o which_o calumny_n i_o shall_v not_o fix_v upon_o the_o persuasion_n of_o conscience_n for_o that_o may_v equal_o serve_v for_o all_o party_n but_o upon_o a_o great_a difference_n in_o the_o very_a nature_n of_o the_o case_n as_o will_v appear_v in_o these_o particular_n 1._o we_o appeal_v to_o the_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o true_o catholic_n church_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o difference_n between_o we_o and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n we_o be_v as_o ready_a as_o they_o to_o stand_v to_o the_o unanimous_a consent_n of_o father_n and_o to_o vincentius_n lerinensis_n his_o rule_n of_o antiquity_n universality_n and_o consent_n we_o declare_v let_v the_o thing_n in_o dispute_n be_v prove_v to_o have_v be_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n in_o all_o age_n we_o be_v ready_a to_o submit_v to_o they_o but_o those_o who_o separate_v from_o the_o church_n of_o england_n make_v this_o their_o fundamental_a principle_n as_o to_o worship_v wherein_o the_o difference_n lie_v that_o nothing_o be_v lawful_a in_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n but_o what_o he_o have_v express_o command_v we_o say_v all_o thing_n be_v lawful_a which_o be_v not_o forbid_v and_o upon_o this_o single_a point_n stand_v the_o whole_a controversy_n of_o separation_n as_o to_o the_o constitution_n of_o our_o church_n we_o challenge_v those_o that_o separate_v from_o we_o to_o produce_v one_o person_n for_o 1500._o year_n together_o that_o hold_v form_n of_o prayer_n to_o be_v unlawful_a or_o the_o ceremony_n which_o be_v use_v in_o our_o church_n we_o defend_v the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n by_o bishop_n to_o be_v the_o most_o ancient_a and_o apostolical_a government_n and_o that_o no_o person_n can_v have_v sufficient_a reason_n to_o cast_v that_o off_o which_o have_v be_v so_o universal_o receive_v in_o all_o age_n since_o the_o apostle_n time_n if_o there_o have_v be_v dispute_v among_o we_o about_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o difference_n between_o the_o two_o order_n and_o the_o necessity_n of_o it_o in_o order_n to_o the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n such_o there_o have_v be_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n too_o here_o then_o lie_v a_o very_a considerable_a difference_n we_o appeal_v and_o be_v ready_a to_o stand_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n for_o interpret_n the_o letter_n of_o scripture_n in_o any_o difference_n between_o we_o and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o those_o who_o separate_v from_o our_o church_n will_v allow_v nothing_o to_o be_v lawful_a but_o what_o have_v a_o express_a command_n in_o scripture_n 2._o the_o guide_n of_o our_o church_n never_o challenge_v any_o infallibility_n to_o themselves_o which_o those_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v and_o have_v do_v ever_o since_o the_o controversy_n begin_v which_o challenge_n of_o infallibility_n make_v the_o breach_n irreconcilable_a while_o that_o pretence_n continue_v for_o there_o can_v be_v no_o other_o way_n but_o absolute_a submission_n where_o man_n still_o pretend_v to_o be_v infallible_a it_o be_v to_o no_o purpose_n to_o propose_v term_n of_o accommodation_n between_o those_o who_o contend_v for_o a_o reformation_n and_o such_o who_o contend_v that_o they_o can_v never_o be_v deceive_v on_o the_o one_o side_n error_n be_v suppose_v and_o on_o the_o other_o that_o it_o be_v impossible_a there_o shall_v by_o any_o until_o therefore_o this_o pretence_n be_v quit_v to_o talk_v of_o accommodation_n be_v folly_n and_o to_o design_n it_o madness_n if_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n will_v allow_v nothing_o to_o be_v amiss_o how_o can_v she_o reform_v any_o thing_n and_o how_o can_v they_o allow_v any_o thing_n to_o be_v amiss_o who_o believe_v they_o can_v never_o be_v deceive_v so_o that_o while_o this_o arrogant_a pretence_n of_o infallibility_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n continue_v it_o be_v impossible_a there_o shall_v be_v any_o reconciliation_n but_o there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n in_o the_o least_o pretend_a by_o our_o church_n 21._o that_o declare_v in_o her_o article_n 3._o that_o general_a council_n may_v err_v and_o sometime_o have_v err_v even_o in_o thing_n pertain_v to_o god_n and_o that_o all_o the_o proof_n of_o thing_n to_o be_v believe_v be_v to_o be_v take_v from_o holy_a scripture_n so_o that_o as_o to_o the_o ground_n of_o faith_n there_o be_v no_o difference_n between_o our_o church_n and_o those_o who_o dissent_v from_o she_o and_o none_o of_o they_o charge_n our_o church_n with_o any_o error_n in_o doctrine_n nor_o plead_v that_o as_o the_o reason_n of_o their_o separation_n 3._o the_o church_n of_o rome_n not_o only_o require_v the_o belief_n of_o her_o error_n but_o make_v the_o belief_n of_o they_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n which_o be_v plain_a by_o the_o often_o object_v creed_n of_o pius_n 4._o wherein_o the_o same_o necessity_n be_v express_v of_o believe_v the_o additional_a article_n which_o be_v proper_a to_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o of_o the_o most_o fundamental_a article_n of_o christian_a faith_n and_o no_o man_n who_o read_v that_o bull_n can_v discern_v the_o least_o difference_n therein_o make_v between_o the_o necessity_n of_o believe_v one_o and_o the_o other_o but_o that_o all_o together_o make_v up_o that_o faith_n without_o which_o no_o man_n can_v be_v save_v which_o though_o only_o require_v of_o some_o person_n to_o make_v profession_n of_o yet_o that_o profession_n be_v to_o be_v esteem_v the_o faith_n of_o their_o church_n but_o nothing_o of_o this_o nature_n can_v be_v object_v against_o our_o church_n by_o dissenter_n that_o exclude_v none_o from_o a_o possibility_n of_o salvation_n mere_o because_o not_o in_o her_o communion_n as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n express_o do_v for_o it_o be_v not_o only_a boniface_n 8._o who_o determine_v as_o solemn_o as_o he_o can_v 11._o that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n to_o be_v in_o subjection_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n but_o the_o council_n of_o lateran_n under_o leo_n 10._o decree_v the_o same_o thing_n 4._o the_o guide_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n pretend_v to_o as_o immediate_a authority_n of_o oblige_v the_o conscience_n of_o man_n as_o christ_n or_o his_o apostle_n have_v but_o we_o challenge_v no_o more_o than_o teach_v man_n to_o do_v what_o christ_n have_v command_v they_o and_o in_o other_o thing_n not_o command_v or_o forbid_v to_o give_v rule_n which_o on_o the_o account_n of_o the_o general_n command_v of_o scripture_n they_o look_v on_o the_o member_n of_o our_o church_n as_o oblige_v to_o observe_v so_o that_o the_o authority_n challenge_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n encroach_v on_o the_o prerogative_n of_o christ_n be_v of_o the_o same_o nature_n with_o he_o but_o that_o which_o our_o governor_n plead_v for_o be_v only_o that_o which_o belong_v to_o they_o as_o governor_n over_o a_o christian_a society_n hence_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n it_o be_v account_v as_o much_o a_o mortal_a sin_n to_o disobey_v their_o guide_n in_o the_o most_o indifferent_a thing_n as_o to_o disobey_v god_n in_o the_o plain_a command_n of_o scripture_n but_o that_o be_v not_o all_o they_o challenge_v to_o themselves_o but_o a_o power_n likewise_o to_o dispense_v with_o the_o law_n be_v of_o god_n as_o in_o matter_n of_o marriage_n and_o with_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n as_o in_o communion_n in_o one_o kind_n and_o promise_v the_o same_o spiritual_a effect_n to_o
think_v fit_a 17._o and_o what_o can_v the_o most_o skilful_a man_n in_o the_o scripture_n do_v with_o such_o man_n who_o deny_v or_o affirm_v what_o they_o please_v therefore_o such_o kind_n of_o dispute_n tend_v to_o no_o good_a at_o all_o where_o either_o side_n charge_v the_o other_o with_o forge_v and_o pervert_v the_o scripture_n 18._o and_o so_o the_o controversy_n with_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v manage_v by_o the_o scripture_n by_o which_o either_o none_o or_o a_o uncertain_a victory_n be_v to_o be_v obtain_v 2._o in_o this_o dispute_n about_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n the_o true_a ancient_a faith_n be_v first_o to_o be_v inquire_v after_o for_o among_o who_o that_o be_v there_o will_v appear_v to_o be_v the_o true_a meaning_n of_o scripture_n 19_o and_o for_o find_v out_o the_o true_a faith_n we_o be_v to_o remember_v that_o christ_n send_v abroad_o his_o apostle_n to_o plant_v church_n in_o every_o city_n from_o whence_o other_o church_n do_v derive_v the_o faith_n 20._o which_o be_v call_v apostolical_a from_o their_o agreement_n in_o this_o common_a faith_n at_o first_o deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n that_o the_o way_n to_o understand_v this_o apostolical_a faith_n be_v to_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o apostolical_a church_n 21._o for_o it_o be_v unreasonable_a to_o suppose_v that_o the_o apostle_n shall_v not_o know_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n 22._o 23._o 24._o 25._o 26._o 27._o which_o he_o at_o large_a prove_n or_o that_o they_o do_v not_o deliver_v to_o the_o church_n plant_v by_o they_o the_o thing_n which_o they_o know_v or_o that_o the_o church_n misunderstand_v their_o doctrine_n because_o all_o the_o christian_a church_n be_v agree_v in_o one_o common_a faith_n 28._o and_o therefore_o there_o be_v all_o the_o reason_n to_o believe_v that_o so_o universal_a consent_n must_v arise_v from_o some_o common_a cause_n which_o can_v be_v suppose_v to_o be_v no_o other_o than_o the_o common_a delivery_n of_o it_o by_o all_o the_o apostle_n but_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o heretic_n be_v novel_a and_o upstart_a 29._o and_o we_o must_v say_v all_o the_o former_a christian_n be_v baptize_v into_o a_o false_a faith_n as_o not_o know_v the_o true_a god_n or_o the_o true_a christ_n if_o martion_n and_o valentinus_n do_v deliver_v the_o true_a doctrine_n 30._o but_o that_o which_o be_v first_o be_v true_a and_o from_o god_n that_o which_o come_v after_o be_v foreign_a and_o false_a if_o martion_n and_o valentinus_n nigidius_n or_o hermogenes_n broach_v new_a opinion_n and_o set_v up_o other_o exposition_n of_o scripture_n than_o the_o christian_a church_n have_v receive_v from_o the_o apostle_n time_n that_o without_o any_o far_a proof_n discover_v their_o imposture_n 3._o two_o sense_n direct_o contrary_a to_o each_o other_o can_v proceed_v from_o the_o same_o apostolical_a person_n this_o tertullian_n likewise_o insist_o upon_o to_o show_v that_o although_o they_o may_v pretend_v antiquity_n and_o that_o as_o far_o as_o the_o apostolical_a time_n yet_o the_o contrariety_n of_o their_o doctrine_n to_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n will_v sufficient_o manifest_v the_o falsehood_n of_o it_o for_o say_v he_o the_o apostle_n will_v never_o contradict_v each_o other_o or_o themselves_o 32._o and_o if_o the_o apostolical_a person_n have_v contradict_v they_o they_o have_v not_o be_v join_v together_o in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o same_o faith_n which_o all_o the_o apostolical_a church_n be_v but_o the_o doctrine_n broach_v by_o these_o man_n be_v in_o their_o seed_n condemn_v by_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o 33._o so_o martion_n apelles_n and_o valentinus_n be_v confute_v in_o the_o sadducee_n and_o first_o corrupter_n of_o christianity_n but_o the_o true_a christian_n can_v not_o be_v charge_v by_o their_o adversary_n with_o hold_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o what_o the_o church_n receive_v from_o the_o apostle_n the_o apostle_n from_o christ_n and_o christ_n from_o god_n for_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o church_n be_v so_o evident_a 36._o and_o the_o chair_n of_o the_o apostle_n so_o well_o know_v 37._o that_o any_o one_o may_v satisfy_v his_o curiosity_n about_o their_o doctrine_n especial_o since_o their_o authentic_a epistle_n be_v still_o preserve_v therein_o but_o where_o a_o diversity_n of_o doctrine_n be_v find_v from_o the_o apostle_n that_o be_v sufficient_a evidence_n of_o a_o false_a sense_n that_o be_v put_v upon_o the_o scripture_n thus_o tertullian_n lay_v down_o the_o rule_n of_o find_v out_o the_o sense_n of_o controvert_v place_n of_o scripture_n without_o the_o least_o insinuation_n of_o any_o infallibility_n place_v in_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n for_o determine_v the_o certain_a sense_n of_o they_o but_o lest_o by_o this_o way_n of_o prescribe_v against_o heretic_n he_o shall_v seem_v to_o decline_v the_o merit_n of_o the_o cause_n out_o of_o distrust_n of_o be_v able_a to_o manage_v it_o against_o they_o he_o tell_v we_o therefore_o elsewhere_o he_o will_v set_v aside_o the_o ground_n of_o prescription_n or_o just_a exception_n against_o their_o plead_n for_o so_o prescription_n signify_v in_o he_o as_o against_o martion_n and_o hermogenes_n and_o praxeas_n and_o refute_v their_o opinion_n upon_o other_o ground_n in_o his_o book_n against_o martion_n he_o first_o lay_v down_o martions_n rule_n as_o he_o call_v it_o i.e._n the_o sum_n of_o his_o opinion_n which_o be_v make_v the_o creator_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n two_o distinct_a god_n the_o one_o nothing_o but_o goodness_n and_o the_o other_o the_o author_n of_o evil_n which_o opinion_n he_o overthrow_v from_o principle_n of_o reason_n 2._o because_o there_o can_v be_v two_o infinite_o great_a and_o on_o the_o same_o ground_n he_o make_v two_o he_o may_v make_v many_o more_o 6._o and_o because_o god_n must_v be_v know_v by_o his_o work_n 12._o and_o he_o can_v not_o be_v god_n that_o do_v not_o create_v the_o world_n and_o so_o continue_v argue_v against_o martion_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o first_o book_n in_o the_o second_o he_o vindicate_v god_n the_o creator_n from_o all_o the_o objection_n which_o martion_n have_v muster_v against_o his_o goodness_n in_o the_o three_o he_o prove_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o creator_n 5._o first_o by_o reason_n and_o then_o by_o scripture_n and_o lay_v down_o two_o rule_n for_o understand_v the_o prophetical_a prediction_n relate_v to_o the_o manner_n of_o express_v future_a thing_n as_o past_a and_o the_o enigmatical_a way_n of_o represent_v plain_a thing_n afterward_o he_o prove_v in_o the_o same_o manner_n from_o scripture_n and_o reason_n 9_o that_o christ_n do_v true_o assume_v our_o nature_n and_o not_o mere_o in_o appearance_n which_o he_o demonstrate_v from_o the_o death_n and_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n and_o from_o the_o evidence_n of_o sense_n and_o make_v that_o sufficient_a evidence_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o a_o body_n that_o it_o be_v the_o object_n of_o three_o sense_n of_o sight_n and_o touch_v and_o hear_n which_o be_v the_o same_o way_n of_o argue_v we_o make_v use_v of_o against_o transubstantiation_n and_o if_o martion_n have_v be_v so_o subtle_a to_o have_v use_v the_o evasion_n those_o do_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n he_o may_v have_v defend_v the_o putative_a body_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o very_a same_o manner_n that_o they_o do_v the_o be_v of_o accident_n without_o a_o substance_n in_o the_o four_o book_n he_o assert_n against_o martion_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o gospel_n receive_v in_o the_o christian_a church_n above_o that_o which_o martion_n allow_v 4_o by_o the_o great_a antiquity_n and_o the_o universal_a reception_n of_o the_o true_a gospel_n 5._o and_o after_o refute_v the_o supposition_n of_o a_o twofold_a christ_n one_o for_o the_o jew_n and_o another_o for_o the_o gentile_n from_o the_o compare_v of_o scripture_n together_o ●●_o which_o he_o do_v with_o great_a diligence_n and_o answer_v all_o the_o argument_n from_o thence_o bring_v by_o martion_n to_o prove_v that_o christ_n be_v a_o enemy_n to_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n in_o his_o five_o and_o last_o book_n he_o prove_v out_o of_o the_o epistle_n of_o st._n paul_n allow_v by_o martion_n that_o he_o preach_v no_o other_o god_n than_o the_o creator_n and_o that_o christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o creator_n which_o he_o do_v from_o the_o scope_n and_o circumstance_n of_o the_o place_n without_o apprehend_v the_o least_o necessity_n of_o call_v in_o any_o infallible_a guide_n to_o give_v the_o certain_a sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o they_o against_o hermogenes_n 19_o he_o dispute_v about_o the_o eternity_n of_o matter_n the_o controversy_n between_o they_o he_o tell_v we_o be_v concern_v the_o sense_n of_o some_o place_n of_o scripture_n which_o relate_v to_o the_o creation_n of_o thing_n tertullian_n prove_v that_o all_o thing_n be_v make_v of_o nothing_o
church_n what_o security_n can_v any_o man_n have_v against_o arianism_n since_o the_o council_n which_o favour_v it_o be_v more_o numerous_a than_o those_o which_o oppose_v and_o condemn_v it_o yea_o so_o mean_a be_v the_o opinion_n which_o some_o of_o the_o great_a person_n of_o the_o church_n at_o that_o time_n have_v of_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n meet_v together_o in_o council_n that_o st._n gregory_n nazianzen_n declare_v he_o have_v not_o see_v a_o good_a issue_n of_o any_o of_o they_o ●5_n but_o they_o rather_o increase_v mischief_n than_o remove_v any_o because_o of_o the_o contention_n and_o ambition_n which_o rule_v in_o they_o therefore_o he_o resolve_v to_o come_v no_o more_o at_o any_o of_o they_o what_o have_v st._n gregory_n so_o mean_v a_o esteem_n of_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n to_o think_v that_o ambition_n and_o contention_n shall_v sway_v they_o in_o their_o council_n and_o not_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n which_o certain_o rule_v not_o where_o the_o other_o do_v yet_o this_o the_o declare_v to_o be_v his_o mind_n upon_o consideration_n and_o experience_n in_o that_o time_n and_o if_o he_o have_v live_v to_o those_o bless_a day_n of_o the_o council_n of_o latter_a age_n with_o what_o zeal_n and_o rhetoric_n will_v he_o have_v set_v they_o forth_o never_o be_v any_o answer_n more_o jejune_n to_o this_o testimony_n than_o that_o of_o bellarmin_n 7._o viz._n that_o forsooth_o there_o can_v be_v no_o lawful_a council_n call_v in_o his_o time_n and_o why_o so_o i_o pray_v be_v there_o not_o a_o good_a authority_n to_o call_v they_o but_o if_o that_o have_v be_v the_o reason_n he_o do_v not_o so_o little_o understand_v the_o way_n of_o express_v himself_o to_o assign_v the_o cause_n of_o it_o to_o contention_n and_o ambition_n if_o he_o mean_v quite_o another_o thing_n which_o he_o do_v not_o in_o the_o least_o intimate_a and_o what_o if_o he_o be_v afterward_o present_a at_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n do_v that_o show_n that_o his_o mind_n be_v in_o the_o least_o change_v but_o in_o this_o epistle_n he_o declare_v how_o little_a good_a be_v to_o be_v expect_a from_o a_o council_n and_o yet_o afterward_o by_o the_o emperor_n command_n he_o may_v be_v present_a at_o one_o 14._o st._n augustin_n in_o deal_v with_o maximinus_n the_o arian_n express_o set_v aside_o all_o authority_n of_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n as_o to_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n in_o the_o place_n controvert_v between_o they_o for_o he_o say_v i_o will_v neither_o bring_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a neither_o shall_v you_o that_o of_o ariminum_n but_o we_o will_v proceed_v by_o authority_n of_o scripture_n that_o be_v common_a to_o both_o of_o we_o and_o by_o the_o clear_a evidence_n of_o reason_n it_o seem_v then_o st._n augustin_n be_v far_o from_o think_v that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o certainty_n of_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n if_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n be_v set_v aside_o but_o by_o what_o mean_n do_v he_o then_o think_v that_o man_n may_v come_v to_o any_o certainty_n about_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o scripture_n of_o that_o he_o be_v best_o able_a to_o give_v we_o a_o account_n himself_o have_v write_v purposely_o in_o this_o subject_n in_o his_o book_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n the_o substance_n of_o what_o he_o there_o say_v may_v be_v comprehend_v in_o these_o rule_n 1._o that_o the_o main_a scope_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v to_o persuade_v man_n to_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o our_o neighbour_n 36._o without_o which_o he_o say_v no_o man_n do_v true_o understand_v it_o but_o whosoever_o interpret_v scripture_n to_o the_o advance_n of_o that_o though_o he_o may_v be_v mistake_v as_o to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n yet_o his_o error_n be_v not_o dangerous_a 2._o that_o in_o order_n to_o the_o right_a understanding_n of_o scripture_n man_n must_v apply_v themselves_o to_o it_o with_o mind_n due_o prepare_v for_o it_o 7._o by_o a_o fear_n of_o god_n humility_n prayer_n sincerity_n and_o purity_n of_o heart_n 3._o that_o all_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v plain_o lay_v down_o in_o holy_a scripture_n this_o be_v in_o term_n assert_v by_o he_o 9_o as_o a_o fundamental_a principle_n that_o in_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v plain_o set_v down_o in_o scripture_n all_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v find_v which_o contain_v our_o faith_n and_o rule_n of_o life_n i.e._n all_o thing_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o our_o neighbour_n and_o consequent_o to_o the_o make_v we_o happy_a and_o these_o thing_n man_n ought_v especial_o to_o read_v the_o scripture_n for_o and_o the_o more_o they_o find_v of_o they_o the_o large_a their_o understanding_n of_o scripture_n be_v 4._o that_o the_o obscure_a place_n of_o scripture_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v by_o the_o plain_a for_o which_o end_n he_o require_v frequent_a read_n and_o use_v one_o self_n to_o the_o language_n of_o scripture_n ib._n and_o draw_v example_n from_o plain_a place_n to_o illustrate_v difficult_a and_o those_o which_o be_v certain_a to_o clear_v the_o doubtful_a 26._o for_o scarce_o any_o thing_n say_v he_o be_v draw_v out_o of_o the_o most_o difficult_a place_n 6._o but_o what_o be_v very_o plain_o set_v down_o elsewhere_o 5._o that_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o infinite_a variety_n of_o latin_a interpreter_n which_o it_o seem_v be_v in_o his_o time_n in_o matter_n of_o doubt_n it_o be_v necessary_a to_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o original_a hebrew_n and_o greek_a 10._o the_o knowledge_n of_o which_o tongue_n may_v therefore_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o scripture_n because_o several_a word_n be_v preserve_v untranslate_v but_o those_o be_v few_o the_o necessity_n be_v not_o so_o great_a on_o their_o account_n as_o the_o diversity_n of_o interpreter_n 11._o for_o although_o those_o who_o have_v translate_v the_o hebrew_n into_o greek_a may_v be_v reckon_v up_o the_o latin_a interpreter_n can_v not_o which_o diversity_n of_o translation_n do_v rather_o help_v than_o hinder_v the_o understanding_n of_o scripture_n if_o the_o reader_n of_o it_o be_v not_o negligent_a for_o some_o doubtful_a place_n be_v clear_v by_o the_o difference_n of_o reading_n 6._o where_o the_o ambiguity_n lie_v in_o proper_a word_n the_o clear_n of_o it_o depend_v on_o the_o circumstance_n of_o the_o place_n 4._o in_o so_o much_o that_o he_o determine_v that_o it_o be_v a_o very_a rare_a and_o difficult_a thing_n to_o find_v such_o a_o ambiguity_n in_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n which_o may_v not_o be_v clear_v from_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o writer_n or_o compare_v place_n or_o search_v the_o original_a language_n 7._o man_n must_v careful_o distinguish_v between_o proper_a and_o figurative_a expression_n for_o to_o understand_v figurative_a expression_n literal_o be_v to_o subject_v our_o understanding_n to_o carnal_a conception_n of_o thing_n 5._o and_o that_o be_v say_v he_o a_o miserable_a slavery_n of_o mind_n to_o take_v sign_n for_o thing_n such_o sign_n he_o tell_v we_o under_o the_o gospel_n be_v the_o two_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n 9_o the_o great_a difficulty_n herein_o lie_v in_o the_o find_n out_o the_o difference_n between_o proper_a and_o figurative_a expression_n for_o which_o he_o lay_v down_o this_o rule_n if_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n command_v what_o be_v good_a and_o forbid_v what_o be_v evil_a 16._o it_o be_v no_o figurative_a expression_n but_o if_o it_o forbid_v what_o be_v good_a or_o command_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v evil_a it_o must_v be_v figurative_o understand_v for_o which_o he_o instance_n in_o those_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n unless_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n and_o drink_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n you_o shall_v have_v no_o life_n in_o you_o which_o seem_v to_o command_v something_o evil_n must_v be_v figurative_o understand_v of_o communicate_v in_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n and_o call_v to_o mind_n that_o his_o flesh_n be_v crucify_v and_o wound_v for_o we_o 8._o there_o be_v no_o danger_n in_o different_a sense_n be_v give_v of_o the_o same_o place_n of_o scripture_n if_o every_o one_o of_o those_o sense_n appear_v by_o other_o place_n to_o be_v agreeable_a to_o truth_n 26._o this_o be_v suppose_v that_o the_o person_n do_v sincere_o inquire_v after_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o author_n for_o say_v he_o that_o divine_a spirit_n may_v easy_o foresee_v how_o many_o several_a sense_n those_o word_n be_v capable_a of_o which_o be_v agreeable_a to_o other_o part_n of_o scripture_n though_o not_o the_o particular_a meaning_n of_o those_o word_n the_o mistake_n can_v be_v dangerous_a therein_o 9_o where_o such_o a_o sense_n be_v give_v which_o can_v be_v prove_v by_o other_o certain_a
testimony_n of_o scripture_n it_o must_v be_v make_v manifest_a to_o be_v the_o sense_n by_o clear_a evidence_n of_o reason_n 28._o but_o he_o rather_o approve_v the_o way_n of_o prove_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n by_o other_o place_n of_o scripture_n where_o the_o interpretation_n be_v doubtful_a so_o that_o the_o way_n in_o doubtful_a place_n which_o he_o prescribe_v be_v this_o either_o to_o draw_v such_o a_o sense_n from_o they_o as_o have_v no_o dispute_n concern_v its_o be_v a_o true_a proposition_n or_o if_o it_o have_v that_o it_o be_v confirm_v by_o other_o place_n of_o scripture_n beside_o these_o he_o lay_v down_o the_o 7._o rule_n of_o ticonius_n the_o donatist_n which_o be_v not_o of_o that_o consequence_n to_o be_v here_o repeat_v that_o which_o i_o take_v notice_n of_o be_v that_o st._n augustin_n think_v the_o rule_n he_o give_v sufficient_a for_o understand_v the_o meaning_n of_o scripture_n in_o doubtful_a place_n but_o he_o do_v not_o in_o the_o least_o mention_n the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n as_o a_o necessary_a mean_n for_o that_o end_n but_o he_o do_v assert_v in_o as_o plain_a term_n as_o i_o have_v do_v that_o scripture_n be_v plain_a in_o all_o necessary_n to_o salvation_n to_o any_o sober_a enquirer_n and_o what_o ever_o consequence_n be_v charge_v upon_o i_o for_o make_v that_o a_o fundamental_a principle_n must_v reflect_v as_o much_o upon_o st._n augustin_n as_o i_o and_o i_o do_v not_o fear_v all_o the_o objection_n can_v be_v make_v against_o a_o principle_n so_o evident_a to_o reason_n and_o so_o agreeable_a not_o only_o to_o st._n augustin_n but_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n both_o before_o and_o after_o he_o the_o next_o after_o st._n augustin_n who_o have_v purposely_o write_v of_o this_o argument_n about_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v vincentius_n lerinensis_n 4._o about_o 4._o year_n after_o st._n augustins_n death_n and_o 3._o after_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n who_o seem_v to_o attribute_v more_o to_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n than_o st._n augustin_n do_v yet_o far_o enough_o short_a of_o infallibility_n he_o say_v that_o every_o man_n ought_v to_o strengthen_v his_o faith_n against_o heresy_n by_o two_o thing_n first_o by_o the_o authoriry_n of_o the_o divine_a law_n and_o then_o by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n which_o tradition_n he_o make_v necessary_a not_o by_o way_n of_o addition_n to_o the_o scripture_n for_o he_o allow_v the_o perfection_n and_o sufficiency_n of_o that_o for_o all_o thing_n but_o only_o to_o interpret_v scripture_n by_o give_v a_o certain_a sense_n of_o it_o there_o be_v such_o different_a opinion_n among_o man_n about_o it_o for_o all_o the_o heretic_n who_o he_o there_o name_n have_v different_a sense_n of_o scripture_n as_o novatianus_n sabellius_n donatus_n arius_n macedonius_n photinus_n etc._n etc._n but_o then_o he_o bound_v this_o tradition_n within_o the_o compass_n of_o the_o universal_a consent_n of_o antiquity_n as_o well_o as_o the_o present_a church_n or_o as_o he_o express_v it_o within_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v believe_v every_o where_o always_o and_o by_o all_o person_n that_o we_o may_v therefore_o consider_v how_o far_o these_o rule_n of_o vincentius_n will_v serve_v for_o explain_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n we_o be_v to_o take_v notice_n of_o the_o restriction_n he_o lay_v upon_o they_o 1._o that_o they_o be_v to_o be_v take_v together_o and_o not_o one_o of_o they_o separate_v from_o the_o rest_n as_o for_o instance_n that_o of_o universality_n in_o any_o one_o age_n of_o the_o church_n be_v take_v without_o the_o consent_n of_o antiquity_n be_v no_o sufficient_a rule_n to_o interpret_v scripture_n by_o for_o vincentius_n do_v suppose_v that_o any_o one_o age_n of_o the_o church_n may_v be_v so_o overrun_v with_o heresy_n that_o there_o be_v no_o way_n to_o confute_v it_o but_o by_o recourse_n to_o antiquity_n for_o in_o the_o case_n of_o the_o arian_n heresy_n he_o grant_v that_o almost_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v overspread_v with_o it_o and_o there_o be_v then_o no_o way_n leave_v but_o to_o prefer_v the_o consent_n of_o antiquity_n before_o a_o prevail_a novelty_n in_o some_o case_n the_o universal_a consent_n of_o the_o present_a church_n be_v to_o be_v rely_v upon_o against_o the_o attempt_n of_o particular_a person_n as_o in_o that_o of_o the_o donatist_n but_o then_o we_o be_v to_o consider_v that_o antiquity_n be_v still_o plead_v on_o the_o same_o side_n that_o universality_n be_v and_o suppose_v that_o all_o the_o ancient_a church_n from_o the_o apostle_n time_n have_v be_v of_o the_o same_o mind_n with_o the_o donatist_n the_o great_a number_n of_o the_o same_o age_n oppose_v they_o will_v have_v be_v no_o more_o cogent_a against_o they_o than_o it_o be_v afterward_o for_o the_o arian_n it_o be_v unreasonable_a to_o believe_v that_o in_o a_o thing_n universal_o believe_v by_o all_o christian_n from_o the_o apostle_n time_n the_o christian_a church_n shall_v be_v deceive_v but_o it_o be_v quite_o another_o thing_n to_o say_v that_o the_o church_n in_o any_o one_o or_o more_o age_n since_o the_o apostle_n time_n may_v be_v deceive_v especial_o if_o the_o church_n be_v confine_v to_o one_o certain_a communion_n exclude_v all_o other_o and_o the_o person_n in_o that_o church_n have_v not_o liberty_n to_o deliver_v their_o opinion_n for_o than_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o know_v what_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v and_o so_o universality_n be_v not_o think_v by_o vincentius_n himself_o to_o be_v alone_o sufficient_a to_o determine_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n suppose_v that_o universality_n to_o be_v understand_v according_a to_o the_o honesty_n of_o the_o primitive_a time_n for_o a_o free_a and_o general_a consent_n of_o the_o christian_n of_o that_o age_n in_o which_o a_o man_n live_v but_o since_o the_o great_a division_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n it_o be_v both_o a_o very_a hard_a matter_n to_o know_v the_o consent_n of_o christendom_n in_o most_o of_o the_o controvert_v place_n of_o scripture_n and_o withal_o the_o notion_n of_o universality_n be_v debauch_v and_o corrupt_v and_o make_v only_o to_o signify_v the_o consent_n of_o one_o great_a faction_n which_o be_v call_v by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n but_o true_o know_v by_o the_o name_n of_o roman_a 2._o that_o great_a care_n and_o judgement_n must_v be_v use_v in_o the_o apply_v those_o rule_n for_o 1._o the_o consent_n of_o antiquity_n be_v not_o equal_o evident_a in_o all_o matter_n in_o dispute_n and_o therefore_o can_v be_v of_o equal_a use_n 1._o there_o be_v some_o thing_n wherein_o we_o may_v be_v certain_a of_o such_o a_o consent_n and_o that_o be_v in_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n as_o vincentius_n and_o most_o of_o the_o ancient_a writer_n call_v it_o i.e._n the_o summary_n comprehension_n of_o a_o christian_n duty_n as_o to_o matter_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v not_o so_o often_o call_v the_o symbol_n as_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n that_o i_o mean_v which_o be_v deliver_v to_o person_n who_o be_v to_o be_v baptize_v and_o receive_v into_o the_o church_n this_o the_o ancient_a church_n universal_o agree_v in_o as_o to_o the_o substance_n of_o it_o and_o as_o to_o this_o vincentius_n tell_v we_o his_o rule_n be_v especial_o to_o be_v understand_v ●●_o for_o say_v he_o this_o consent_n of_o antiquity_n be_v not_o to_o be_v seek_v for_o in_o all_o question_n that_o may_v arise_v about_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n but_o only_o or_o at_o least_o chief_o in_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n or_o as_o he_o elsewhere_o explain_v himself_o 〈◊〉_d alone_o or_o chief_o in_o those_o question_n which_o concern_v the_o fundamental_o of_o the_o catholic_n doctrine_n which_o be_v those_o contain_v in_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n deliver_v to_o all_o that_o be_v to_o be_v baptize_v suppose_v man_n now_o shall_v stretch_v this_o rule_n beyond_o the_o limit_n assign_v it_o by_o vincentius_n what_o security_n can_v there_o be_v from_o he_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v a_o certain_a rule_n who_o confine_v it_o within_o such_o narrow_a bound_n not_o that_o i_o think_v his_o rule_n of_o no_o use_n at_o all_o now_o no_o i_o think_v they_o to_o be_v of_o admirable_a use_n and_o great_a importance_n to_o christianity_n if_o true_o understand_v and_o apply_v i.e._n when_o any_o person_n take_v upon_o they_o to_o impose_v any_o thing_n upon_o other_o as_o a_o necessary_a matter_n of_o faith_n to_o be_v believe_v by_o they_o we_o can_v have_v no_o better_a rule_n of_o judgement_n in_o this_o case_n than_o those_o of_o vincentius_n be_v viz._n antiquity_n universality_n and_o consent_n and_o whatsoever_o can_v be_v prove_v by_o these_o rule_v aught_o to_o be_v reject_v by_o all_o christian_n to_o make_v this_o plain_a the_o
ancient_a creed_n we_o allow_v on_o both_o side_n to_o have_v be_v universal_o receive_v by_o the_o catholic_n church_n but_o now_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n add_v new_a article_n to_o be_v believe_v we_o desire_v to_o put_v the_o whole_a matter_n upon_o this_o issue_n let_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n the_o roman_a church_n infallibility_n the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n purgatory_n etc._n etc._n be_v prove_v by_o as_o universal_a consent_n of_o antiquity_n as_o the_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n be_v and_o then_o let_v they_o charge_v we_o with_o heresy_n if_o we_o reject_v they_o but_o we_o say_v the_o measure_n of_o heresy_n in_o the_o ancient_a church_n be_v the_o reject_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n universal_o receive_v among_o christian_n this_o rule_n of_o faith_n we_o stand_v to_o and_o say_v no_o other_o can_v be_v make_v upon_o any_o pretence_n whatsoever_o 35._o as_o vincentius_n at_o large_a prove_n but_o what_o ever_o thing_n be_v obtrude_v on_o the_o belief_n of_o christian_n which_o want_v that_o universal_a consent_n of_o antiquity_n which_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n have_v we_o be_v bind_v by_o vincentius_n from_o plain_a scripture_n to_o shun_v they_o as_o profane_a novelty_n and_o corruption_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n these_o rule_v therefore_o be_v not_o bare_o allow_v but_o plead_v for_o by_o we_o in_o the_o test_n of_o article_n of_o faith_n as_o to_o which_o vincentius_n tell_v we_o if_o not_o the_o only_a yet_o the_o chief_a use_n of_o they_o be_v 2._o but_o suppose_v the_o question_n be_v not_o concern_v the_o express_a article_n of_o this_o rule_n of_o faith_n but_o concern_v the_o sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o they_o how_o then_o be_v we_o to_o find_v out_o the_o consent_n of_o antiquity_n for_o they_o may_v all_o agree_v in_o the_o word_n and_o yet_o have_v a_o different_a notion_n of_o the_o thing_n praefat_fw-la as_o petavius_n at_o large_a prove_n that_o there_o be_v a_o ancient_a tradition_n for_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o trinity_n and_o yet_o he_o confess_v that_o most_o of_o the_o writer_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n do_v differ_v in_o their_o explication_n of_o it_o from_o that_o which_o be_v only_o allow_v by_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a 2._o and_o he_o grant_v that_o arius_n do_v follow_v the_o opinion_n of_o many_o of_o the_o ancient_n in_o the_o main_a of_o his_o doctrine_n who_o be_v guilty_a of_o the_o same_o error_n that_o he_o be_v before_o the_o matter_n be_v thorough_o discuss_v here_o now_o arise_v the_o great_a difficulty_n to_o i_o in_o this_o point_n of_o tradition_n the_o usefulness_n of_o it_o i_o be_o tell_v be_v for_o explain_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n but_o there_o begin_v a_o great_a controversy_n in_o the_o church_n about_o the_o explication_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o trinity_n i_o desire_v to_o know_v whether_o vincentius_n his_o rule_n will_v help_v we_o here_o 1_o it_o be_v plead_v by_o st._n hierome_n and_o other_o that_o the_o writer_n of_o the_o church_n may_v err_v in_o this_o matter_n or_o speak_v unwary_o in_o it_o before_o the_o matter_n come_v to_o be_v thorough_o discuss_v if_o so_o how_o come_v the_o testimony_n of_o erroneous_a or_o unwary_a writer_n to_o be_v the_o certain_a mean_n of_o give_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n and_o in_o most_o of_o the_o controversy_n of_o the_o church_n this_o way_n have_v be_v use_v to_o take_v off_o the_o testimony_n of_o person_n who_o write_v before_o the_o controversy_n begin_v and_o speak_v different_o of_o the_o matter_n in_o debate_n i_o do_v not_o deny_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o allegation_n in_o behalf_n of_o those_o person_n but_o to_o my_o understanding_n it_o plain_o show_v the_o incompetency_n of_o tradition_n for_o give_v a_o certain_a sense_n of_o scripture_n when_o that_o tradition_n be_v to_o be_v take_v from_o the_o writer_n of_o the_o forego_n age_n and_o if_o this_o have_v be_v the_o only_a way_n of_o confute_v arius_n it_o be_v a_o great_a question_n how_o he_o can_v ever_o have_v be_v condemn_v if_o petavius_n or_o st._n hierome_n say_v true_a but_o since_o a_o general_n council_n have_v determine_v the_o contrary_a to_o the_o opinion_n of_o these_o writer_n before_o which_o council_n have_v be_v receive_v by_o the_o universal_a church_n i_o will_v not_o deny_v that_o they_o have_v better_a opportunity_n of_o know_v what_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n be_v when_o so_o many_o write_n be_v extant_a which_o be_v now_o lose_v than_o we_o can_v have_v at_o this_o distance_n and_o therefore_o we_o yield_v all_o submission_n to_o a_o council_n of_o that_o nature_n and_o proceed_n in_o that_o manner_n which_o that_o of_o nice_n do_v who_o do_v not_o mere_o determine_v that_o controversy_n by_o the_o number_n of_o writer_n on_o their_o side_n before_o they_o but_o by_o compare_v the_o opinion_n afterward_o with_o the_o rule_n of_o scripture_n and_o in_o this_o regard_n we_o acknowledge_v a_o great_a reverence_n due_a to_o the_o decree_n of_o such_o general_a council_n as_o that_o be_v therefore_o next_o to_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n we_o allow_v a_o great_a veneration_n to_o the_o determination_n of_o lawful_a general_n council_n universal_o receive_v which_o vincentius_n himself_o plead_v for_o but_o suppose_v no_o general_a council_n or_o such_o which_o be_v not_o allow_v or_o receive_v for_o such_o we_o be_v yet_o to_o inquire_v into_o the_o way_n of_o find_v out_o catholic_n tradition_n which_o may_v interpret_v scripture_n for_o this_o end_n he_o propose_v another_o mean_n which_o be_v the_o gather_v together_o the_o opinion_n of_o those_o father_n alone_a 39_o who_o live_v holy_o wise_o and_o constant_o in_o the_o faith_n and_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n have_v die_v in_o that_o faith_n or_o else_o for_o it_o but_o still_o with_o this_o reserve_n that_o what_o either_o all_o or_o many_o of_o they_o manifest_o frequent_o and_o constant_o as_o it_o be_v by_o a_o council_n of_o they_o have_v confirm_v by_o their_o receive_n hold_v and_o deliver_v of_o it_o that_o aught_o to_o be_v hold_v for_o undoubted_a certain_a and_o firm_a but_o whatsoever_o any_o one_o though_o holy_a and_o learned_a though_o a_o bishop_n confessor_n or_o martyr_n have_v hold_v against_o the_o opinion_n of_o other_o that_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v look_v on_o as_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n but_o as_o his_o own_o private_a opinion_n and_o therefore_o not_o to_o be_v follow_v which_o word_n i_o shall_v not_o examine_v with_o all_o the_o severity_n that_o some_o have_v do_v for_o then_o the_o prove_v these_o condition_n to_o have_v be_v observe_v by_o any_o one_o person_n will_v require_v more_o pain_n and_o be_v less_o capable_a of_o resolution_n than_o the_o matter_n itself_o be_v but_o i_o say_v that_o in_o most_o of_o the_o controversy_n this_o day_n in_o the_o christian_a world_n it_o may_v be_v much_o more_o satisfactory_a to_o examine_v the_o merit_n of_o the_o cause_n than_o the_o integrity_n of_o the_o witness_n these_o condition_n be_v suppose_v and_o yet_o after_o all_o this_o we_o must_v not_o misunderstand_v he_o as_o though_o this_o way_n will_v serve_v to_o confute_v all_o heresy_n for_o he_o tell_v we_o yet_o far_o 2._o this_o course_n can_v only_o hold_v in_o some_o new_a and_o upstart_a heresy_n i.e._n in_o case_n of_o the_o pretence_n of_o some_o new_a revelation_n when_o man_n pretend_v to_o some_o special_a grace_n without_o humane_a industry_n to_o discover_v some_o divine_a truth_n not_o know_v before_o 37._o but_o in_o case_n of_o ancient_a and_o inveterate_a heresy_n 39_o he_o say_v we_o have_v no_o way_n to_o deal_v with_o they_o but_o either_o only_a by_o scripture_n or_o else_o by_o plain_a decree_n of_o general_a council_n for_o when_o heresy_n have_v be_v of_o long_a continuance_n then_o say_v he_o we_o may_v have_v ground_n to_o suspect_v they_o have_v not_o deal_v fair_o with_o the_o testimony_n of_o ancient_a time_n and_o thus_o we_o see_v what_o vincentius_n have_v offer_v towards_o the_o resolution_n of_o this_o great_a question_n how_o we_o may_v be_v sure_a of_o the_o certain_a sense_n of_o scripture_n in_o controvert_v place_n wherein_o be_v nothing_o contain_v but_o what_o we_o be_v willing_a to_o stand_v to_o and_o very_o far_o from_o the_o least_o supposition_n of_o any_o infallibility_n in_o the_o present_a guide_n of_o the_o church_n for_o that_o end_n thus_o far_o i_o have_v take_v the_o pain_n to_o search_v into_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n in_o this_o important_a controversy_n which_o i_o may_v carry_v yet_o far_o if_o it_o be_v at_o all_o needful_a the_o substance_n of_o what_o be_v deliver_v by_o they_o be_v this_o that_o if_o any_o controversy_n arise_v in_o the_o church_n concern_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n if_o the_o
person_n do_v not_o allow_v the_o scripture_n than_o we_o be_v to_o proceed_v by_o the_o best_a mean_n we_o can_v have_v without_o it_o viz._n the_o tradition_n of_o apostolical_a church_n from_o the_o beginning_n if_o they_o do_v allow_v the_o scripture_n than_o we_o be_v to_o examine_v and_o compare_v place_n of_o scripture_n with_o all_o the_o care_n and_o judgement_n that_o may_v be_v if_o after_o all_o this_o the_o dispute_n still_o continue_v then_o if_o it_o be_v against_o the_o ancient_a rule_n of_o faith_n universal_o receive_v that_o be_v a_o sufficient_a prescription_n against_o any_o opinion_n if_o not_o against_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n in_o express_a word_n but_o about_o the_o sense_n of_o it_o then_o if_o ancient_a general_n council_n have_v determine_v it_o which_o have_v great_a opportunity_n of_o know_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o apostolical_a church_n than_o we_o it_o be_v reasonable_a we_o shall_v yield_v to_o they_o but_o if_o there_o have_v be_v none_o such_o than_o the_o unanimous_a consent_n of_o father_n be_v to_o be_v take_v so_o it_o be_v in_o some_o late_a and_o upstart_a heresy_n which_o man_n pretend_v to_o have_v by_o revelation_n or_o some_o special_a grace_n of_o god_n now_o either_o all_o these_o mean_n be_v sufficient_a or_o not_o to_o find_v out_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n if_o not_o than_o the_o ancient_a church_n be_v whole_o defective_a and_o want_v any_o certain_a way_n of_o find_v out_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n if_o these_o be_v sufficient_a then_o there_o be_v no_o necessity_n of_o infallibility_n in_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n to_o give_v we_o a_o certain_a sense_n of_o scripture_n which_o be_v the_o thing_n to_o be_v prove_v but_o n._n o._n towards_o the_o conclusion_n of_o his_o book_n produce_v st._n augustin_n for_o the_o church_n infallibility_n 85._o in_o deliver_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n in_o obscure_a place_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o what_o i_o have_v already_o say_v concern_v he_o must_v be_v examine_v before_o i_o conclude_v this_o discourse_n about_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n the_o place_n be_v out_o of_o his_o answer_n to_o cresconius_n concern_v the_o obscure_a point_n of_o rebaptisation_n in_o these_o word_n since_o the_o holy_a scripture_n can_v deceive_v 33._o let_v whosoever_o be_v in_o fear_n of_o be_v deceive_v by_o the_o obscurity_n of_o this_o question_n consult_v the_o same_o church_n about_o it_o which_o church_n the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v without_o all_o ambiguity_n demonstrate_v and_o before_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v hold_v by_o we_o in_o this_o matter_n when_o we_o do_v that_o which_o have_v please_v the_o universal_a church_n which_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n do_v commend_v etc._n etc._n all_o which_o be_v false_a and_o say_v to_o no_o purpose_n say_v n._n o._n if_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o clear_a in_o this_o that_o this_o church_n can_v determine_v nothing_o in_o such_o important_a contest_v contrary_a to_o the_o verity_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o that_o we_o ought_v to_o give_v credit_n to_o what_o she_o decide_v for_o than_o it_o will_v not_o be_v true_a what_o he_o say_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o same_o scripture_n in_o this_o matter_n be_v hold_v by_o we_o and_o he_o who_o be_v in_o fear_n of_o be_v deceive_v by_o the_o obscurity_n of_o this_o question_n be_v no_o way_n relieve_v in_o follow_v the_o sentence_n of_o the_o churth_n to_o which_o i_o answer_v that_o st._n augustin_n do_v not_o suppose_v that_o man_n can_v attain_v to_o any_o certainty_n of_o the_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n in_o this_o matter_n without_o the_o church_n infallibility_n for_o he_o say_v in_o the_o chapter_n precede_v that_o in_o this_o matter_n we_o follow_v the_o most_o certain_a authority_n of_o canonical_a scripture_n but_o he_o put_v the_o case_n that_o no_o certain_a example_n can_v be_v produce_v out_o of_o scripture_n than_o he_o say_v they_o have_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o scripture_n when_o they_o do_v that_o which_o please_v the_o universal_a church_n etc._n etc._n for_o the_o explain_v st._n augustins_n meaning_n we_o be_v to_o consider_v that_o there_o be_v two_o controversy_n then_o on_o foot_n in_o the_o church_n with_o the_o donatist_n the_o one_o concern_v rebaptisation_n the_o other_o concern_v the_o church_n the_o former_a he_o look_v upon_o as_o more_o intricate_a and_o obscure_a by_o reason_n not_o only_o of_o the_o doubtfulness_n of_o scripture_n but_o the_o authority_n of_o about_o seventy_o bishop_n of_o africa_n who_o have_v determine_v for_o it_o among_o who_o st._n cyprian_n be_v chief_a which_o we_o see_v in_o all_o his_o dispute_n with_o the_o donatisis_n on_o this_o subject_n he_o be_v very_o much_o perplex_v with_o therefore_o st._n augustin_n find_v that_o controversy_n very_o troublesome_a be_v willing_a to_o bring_v it_o to_o that_o issue_n that_o what_o the_o catholic_n church_n after_o so_o much_o discuss_v the_o point_n have_v agree_v upon_o shall_v be_v receive_v as_o the_o truth_n by_o this_o mean_v the_o dispute_n will_v be_v bring_v to_o that_o other_o question_n which_o he_o think_v much_o more_o easy_a viz._n which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n the_o catholic_n or_o the_o donatist_n but_o by_o no_o mean_n do_v st._n augustin_n hereby_o intend_v to_o make_v the_o church_n authority_n to_o resolve_v all_o doubt_n concern_v scripture_n but_o he_o think_v it_o much_o easy_a to_o prove_v by_o scripture_n which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n than_o whether_o rebaptisation_n be_v lawful_a or_o not_o and_o according_o his_o very_a next_o word_n be_v but_o if_o you_o doubt_v whether_o the_o universal_a church_n be_v that_o which_o the_o scripture_n commend_v i_o will_v load_v you_o with_o many_o and_o most_o manifest_a testimony_n of_o scripture_n to_o that_o end_n which_o be_v the_o design_n of_o his_o book_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n wherein_o he_o show_v 19_o that_o those_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n which_o speak_v of_o the_o universality_n of_o the_o church_n be_v very_o plain_a and_o clear_a and_o need_v no_o interpretation_n at_o all_o that_o in_o this_o case_n we_o be_v not_o to_o regard_v what_o donatus_n 10._o or_o parmenianus_n or_o pontius_n have_v say_v for_o neither_o say_v he_o be_v we_o to_o yield_v to_o catholic_n bishop_n themselves_o if_o they_o be_v at_o any_o time_n so_o much_o deceive_v as_o to_o hold_v what_o be_v contrary_a to_o canonical_a scripture_n by_o which_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o he_o suppose_v no_o infallibility_n in_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n and_o in_o term_n he_o assert_n 16._o that_o the_o church_n be_v to_o be_v prove_v by_o nothing_o but_o plain_a scripture_n neither_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o optatus_n or_o st._n ambrose_n or_o innumerable_a bishop_n nor_o council_n nor_o miracle_n nor_o vision_n and_o revelation_n whatever_o n._n o._n think_v of_o they_o now_o st._n augustin_n suppose_v there_o be_v much_o less_o ambiguity_n in_o scripture_n in_o the_o controversy_n of_o the_o church_n than_o in_o that_o of_o rebaptisation_n he_o endeavour_v to_o bring_v they_o to_o a_o resolution_n in_o the_o other_o point_n for_o the_o clear_n of_o this_o and_o so_o he_o only_o pursue_v the_o method_n lay_v down_o in_o the_o book_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n to_o make_v use_n of_o plain_a place_n of_o scripture_n to_o give_v light_n to_o the_o dark_a and_o when_o they_o be_v convince_v by_o scripture_n that_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n he_o do_v not_o question_n but_o they_o will_v follow_v that_o which_o be_v the_o sentence_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n but_o here_o lie_v the_o main_a difficulty_n on_o what_o account_n the_o sentence_n of_o the_o church_n be_v to_o be_v follow_v in_o order_n to_o the_o resolution_n of_o it_o we_o must_v take_v notice_n of_o these_o thing_n 1._o that_o all_o the_o proof_n which_o st._n augustin_n bring_v for_o the_o church_n do_v relate_v only_o to_o the_o extent_n and_o universality_n of_o it_o and_o not_o to_o any_o infallibility_n that_o be_v promise_v to_o it_o as_o will_v easy_o appear_v to_o any_o one_o that_o will_v read_v his_o discourse_n on_o that_o subject_n against_o the_o donatist_n 2._o that_o he_o assert_v no_o infallibility_n in_o the_o high_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n which_o in_o many_o place_n of_o his_o book_n of_o baptism_n against_o the_o donatist_n he_o make_v to_o be_v a_o plenary_a or_o general_a council_n 2._o who_o authority_n he_o say_v be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o that_o of_o st._n cyprian_n or_o any_o particular_a council_n either_o in_o his_o time_n or_o before_o it_o which_o he_o call_v the_o authority_n and_o decree_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n so_o that_o we_o see_v he_o resolve_v all_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n in_o this_o matter_n into_o that_o of_o a_o general_n
council_n whether_o that_o of_o arles_n or_o nice_a be_v not_o to_o my_o purpose_n to_o inquire_v and_o we_o shall_v then_o see_v what_o his_o opinion_n be_v of_o the_o church_n infallibility_n by_o that_o which_o he_o deliver_v of_o general_a council_n as_o well_o as_o any_o other_o church_n authority_n compare_v with_o the_o scripture_n in_o these_o remarkable_a word_n who_o know_v not_o that_o the_o sacred_a canonical_a scripture_n be_v contain_v within_o its_o certain_a bound_n 3_o and_o be_v so_o far_o to_o be_v prefer_v before_o all_o latter_a write_n of_o bishop_n that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o doubt_n or_o dispute_v at_o all_o make_v whether_o that_o be_v true_a or_o right_o which_o be_v contain_v therein_o but_o all_o latter_a write_n of_o bishop_n which_o have_v be_v or_o be_v write_v since_o the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n have_v be_v confirm_v may_v be_v correct_v if_o in_o any_o thing_n they_o err_v from_o the_o truth_n either_o by_o the_o wise_a discourse_n of_o any_o more_o skilful_a person_n or_o the_o weighty_a authority_n of_o other_o bishop_n or_o the_o prudence_n of_o more_o learned_a man_n or_o by_o council_n and_o even_o council_n themselves_o that_o be_v provincial_a yield_v without_o dispute_n to_o those_o which_o be_v general_n and_o call_v out_o of_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o of_o these_o general_a council_n the_o former_a be_v often_o amend_v by_o the_o latter_a when_o by_o some_o far_a trial_n of_o thing_n that_o which_o be_v shut_v be_v lay_v open_a and_o that_o which_o be_v hide_v be_v make_v know_v without_o any_o swell_n of_o sacrilegious_a pride_n or_o stifness_n of_o arrogancy_n or_o contentin_n of_o envy_n but_o with_o holy_a humility_n catholic_n peace_n and_o christian_a charity_n can_v any_o one_o that_o read_v this_o excellent_a testimony_n of_o st._n augustin_n deliver_v in_o this_o same_o matter_n ever_o imagine_v he_o can_v so_o plain_o contradict_v himself_o as_o to_o assert_v the_o church_n infallibility_n in_o one_o place_n and_o destroy_v it_o in_o another_o will_v he_o assert_v that_o all_o council_n how_o general_n soever_o may_v be_v amend_v by_o follow_a council_n and_o yet_o bind_v man_n to_o believe_v that_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o former_a council_n do_v contain_v the_o unalterable_a will_n of_o god_n a_o lesser_a person_n than_o st._n augustin_n will_v never_o thus_o direct_o contradict_v himself_o and_o that_o about_o the_o very_a same_o controversy_n which_o word_n of_o he_o can_v be_v understand_v of_o unlawful_a council_n of_o matter_n of_o fact_n or_o practice_n but_o do_v refer_v to_o the_o great_a question_n then_o in_o debate_n about_o rebaptise_v heretic_n and_o hereby_o he_o take_v off_o the_o great_a plea_n the_o donatist_n make_v from_o the_o authority_n of_o st._n cyprian_a and_o his_o council_n which_o they_o continual_o urge_v for_o themselves_o 3._o he_o grant_v that_o the_o argument_n draw_v from_o the_o church_n authority_n be_v but_o humane_a and_o that_o satisfaction_n be_v to_o be_v take_v from_o the_o scripture_n in_o this_o controversy_n 4._o for_o mention_v the_o obscurity_n of_o this_o question_n and_o the_o great_a debate_n that_o have_v be_v about_o it_o before_o the_o donatists_n time_n among_o great_a and_o good_a man_n and_o diverse_a resolution_n of_o council_n and_o the_o settlement_n of_o it_o at_o last_o by_o a_o plenary_a council_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n but_o lest_o say_v he_o i_o shall_v seem_v to_o make_v use_n only_o of_o humane_a argument_n i_o produce_v certain_a testimony_n out_o of_o the_o gospel_n by_o which_o god_n willing_a i_o demonstrate_v how_o true_a and_o agreeable_a to_o his_o will_n the_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v 14._o and_o else_o where_o he_o appeal_v not_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o man_n but_o to_o the_o lord_n balance_n viz._n to_o his_o judgement_n deliver_v in_o scripture_n and_o in_o this_o same_o case_n when_o he_o be_v urge_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o cyprian_a 32._o he_o say_v there_o be_v no_o write_n they_o have_v not_o liberty_n to_o judge_v of_o but_o those_o of_o scripture_n and_o by_o they_o they_o be_v to_o judge_n of_o all_o other_o and_o what_o be_v agreeable_a to_o they_o they_o receive_v what_o be_v not_o they_o reject_v though_o write_v by_o person_n of_o never_o so_o great_a authority_n and_o after_o all_o this_o be_v it_o possible_a to_o believe_v that_o st._n augustin_n shall_v make_v the_o church_n decree_n in_o a_o general_n council_n infallible_a no_o the_o utmost_a by_o a_o careful_a consideration_n of_o his_o mind_n in_o this_o matter_n that_o i_o can_v find_v be_v that_o in_o a_o question_n of_o so_o doubtful_a and_o obscure_a a_o nature_n as_o that_o be_v which_o have_v be_v so_o long_o bandy_v in_o the_o church_n of_o africa_n and_o from_o thence_o spread_v over_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n it_o be_v a_o reasonable_a thing_n to_o presume_v that_o what_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n do_v consent_n in_o be_v the_o truth_n not_o upon_o the_o account_n of_o infallibility_n but_o the_o reasonable_a supposition_n that_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n will_v not_o consent_v in_o a_o thing_n repugnant_a to_o any_o apostolical_a doctrine_n or_o tradition_n and_o so_o st._n augustins_n meaning_n be_v the_o same_o with_o vincentius_n lerinensis_n as_o to_o the_o universal_a attestation_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n in_o a_o matter_n of_o tradition_n be_v declare_v by_o the_o decree_n of_o a_o general_n council_n and_o that_o decree_v universal_o receive_v but_o only_o by_o the_o litigant_fw-la party_n in_o africa_n to_o which_o purpose_n it_o be_v observable_a that_o he_o so_o often_o appeal_v to_o the_o universal_a consent_n of_o christian_n in_o this_o matter_n after_o it_o have_v be_v so_o thorough_o discuss_v and_o consider_v by_o the_o most_o wise_a and_o disinterest_v person_n bapt._n and_o that_o consent_v declare_v by_o a_o plenary_a council_n before_o himself_o be_v bear_v do●at_n so_o that_o if_o authority_n be_v to_o be_v rely_v upon_o in_o this_o obscure_a controversy_n 18._o he_o say_v 9_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v 10._o before_o that_o of_o several_a council_n in_o africa_n 7_o of_o the_o bishop_n and_o particular_o st._n cyprian_n who_o meet_v in_o they_o 4_o and_o whereas_o st._n cyprian_n have_v slight_v tradition_n in_o this_o matter_n 2._o christ_n have_v call_v himself_o truth_n and_o not_o custom_n 7._o st._n augustin_n reply_n to_o he_o that_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n have_v be_v always_o so_o and_o continue_v after_o such_o opposition_n and_o confirm_v by_o a_o general_n council_n and_o after_o examination_n of_o the_o reason_n and_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n on_o both_o side_n it_o may_v be_v now_o say_v that_o we_o follow_v what_o truth_n have_v declare_v wherein_o we_o see_v with_o what_o modesty_n and_o upon_o what_o ground_n he_o declare_v his_o mind_n which_o at_o last_o come_v to_o no_o more_o than_o vincentius_n his_o rule_n of_o antiquity_n universality_n and_o consent_n especial_o in_o such_o a_o matter_n as_o this_o be_v which_o have_v nothing_o but_o tradition_n to_o be_v plead_v for_o it_o the_o apostle_n 23._o have_v determine_v nothing_o of_o either_o side_n in_o their_o book_n as_o st_n augustin_n himself_o at_o last_o confess_v in_o this_o matter_n the_o most_o then_o that_o can_v be_v make_v of_o the_o testimony_n allege_v out_o of_o st._n augustin_n be_v this_o that_o in_o a_o matter_n of_o so_o doubtful_a and_o obscure_a a_o nature_n wherein_o the_o apostle_n have_v determine_v nothing_o in_o their_o write_n we_o be_v to_o believe_v that_o to_o be_v the_o truth_n which_o the_o universal_a church_n of_o christ_n agree_v in_o those_o time_n when_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n be_v so_o well_o know_v by_o frequent_a discussion_n of_o the_o case_n and_o come_n at_o last_o to_o a_o resolution_n in_o a_o general_n council_n in_o such_o a_o case_n as_o this_o i_o agree_v to_o what_o st._n augustin_n say_v and_o think_v a_o man_n very_o much_o relieve_v by_o follow_v so_o evident_a a_o consent_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n not_o by_o virtue_n of_o any_o infallibility_n but_o the_o unreasonableness_n of_o believe_v so_o many_o so_o wise_a so_o disinterest_v person_n shall_v be_v deceive_v let_v the_o same_o evidence_n be_v produce_v for_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n from_o the_o apostolical_a time_n in_o the_o matter_n in_o dispute_n between_o our_o church_n and_o that_o of_o rome_n and_o the_o controversy_n of_o infallibility_n may_v be_v lay_v aside_o for_o such_o a_o universal_a consent_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n i_o look_v upon_o as_o the_o most_o authentic_a interpreter_n of_o holy_a scripture_n in_o doubtful_a and_o obscure_a place_n but_o let_v they_o never_o think_v to_o
fob_v we_o off_o with_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o roman_a faction_n for_o the_o universal_a church_n nor_o of_o some_o latter_a age_n for_o a_o tradition_n from_o apostolical_a time_n nor_o of_o a_o pack_v company_n of_o bishop_n for_o a_o true_o general_n council_n and_o thus_o much_o may_v now_o serve_v to_o clear_v that_o important_a controversy_n about_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n in_o doubtful_a place_n the_o last_o thing_n to_o be_v consider_v be_v whether_o the_o same_o argument_n which_o overthrow_n infallibility_n authority_n do_v likewise_o destroy_v all_o church-authority_n for_o this_o be_v by_o n._n o._n frequent_o object_v against_o i_o for_o he_o say_v thus_o it_o happen_v more_o than_o once_o in_o these_o principle_n lay_v down_o by_o i_o that_o in_o 100_o forward_a a_o zeal_n in_o demolish_n the_o one_o viz._n church_n infallibility_n 50._o the_o other_o be_v also_o dangerous_o undermine_v viz._n church-authority_n and_o therefore_o out_o of_o his_o singular_a regard_n to_o the_o good_a of_o our_o church_n he_o say_v it_o concern_v my_o superior_a to_o look_v to_o it_o whether_o their_o church_n and_o their_o own_o authority_n suffer_v no_o detriment_n from_o my_o principle_n and_o again_o he_o say_v my_o principle_n against_o infallibility_n conclude_v the_o uselessness_n of_o any_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n to_o teach_v man_n as_o of_o a_o infallible_a to_o assure_v man_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o by_o use_v only_o their_o own_o sincere_a endeavour_n they_o may_v know_v without_o they_o 84._o and_o last_o he_o say_v my_o principle_n afford_v no_o effectual_a way_n or_o mean_n of_o suppress_v or_o convict_v any_o schism_n 98._o sect_n or_o heresy_n or_o reduce_v they_o either_o to_o submission_n of_o judgement_n or_o silence_n and_o therefore_o he_o desire_v the_o prudent_a to_o consider_v whether_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v not_o much_o debilitate_a and_o bring_v into_o contempt_n 99_o and_o daily_o like_a to_o wane_v more_o and_o more_o by_o this_o new_a take_v up_o way_n of_o its_o defence_n my_o answer_n be_v that_o i_o have_v careful_o examine_v and_o search_v my_o principle_n and_o find_v no_o such_o gunpowder_n in_o they_o for_o blow_v up_o authority_n either_o of_o church_n or_o state_n for_o all_o that_o i_o can_v discover_v they_o be_v very_o innocent_a and_o harmless_a and_o if_o all_o other_o man_n have_v be_v so_o we_o have_v never_o hear_v so_o much_o talk_v of_o this_o way_n of_o undermine_v and_o blow_v up_o but_o be_v it_o not_o a_o pleasant_a thing_n to_o see_v all_o of_o a_o sudden_a what_o zeal_n these_o man_n discover_v for_o the_o preservation_n of_o our_o church_n authority_n alas_o good_a man_n it_o grieve_v they_o at_o the_o very_a heart_n to_o see_v the_o authority_n of_o our_o church_n weaken_v and_o that_o by_o its_o own_o member_n what_o will_v not_o they_o do_v for_o the_o strengthen_n and_o uphold_v of_o it_o what_o pity_v it_o be_v such_o a_o church_n shall_v not_o stand_v who_o very_a enemy_n take_v such_o care_n for_o its_o preservation_n and_o be_v so_o ready_a to_o discover_v the_o plot_n of_o its_o own_o child_n against_o it_o b●t_o to_o be_v ●ure_n there_o be_v mischief_n intend_v when_o enemy_n discover_v it_o not_o by_o those_o who_o they_o accuse_v but_o by_o the_o honest_a informer_n who_o will_v be_v content_a to_o hold_v their_o peace_n if_o they_o think_v they_o can_v not_o sow_v mischief_n by_o pretend_v to_o discover_v it_o it_o be_v a_o pretty_a plot_n to_o make_v those_o who_o design_n to_o defend_v our_o church_n to_o be_v the_o underminer_n of_o it_o and_o the_o most_o profess_a enemy_n its_o sure_a friend_n but_o such_o plot_n be_v too_o fine_a to_o hold_v and_o too_o thin_a not_o to_o be_v see_v through_o how_o be_v it_o i_o beseech_v n._n o._n that_o my_o principle_n undermine_v all_o church_n authority_n have_v i_o any_o where_o make_v the_o church_n a_o mere_a shadow_n and_o a_o insignificant_a cypher_n a_o society_n depend_v only_o on_o the_o pleasure_n of_o man_n for_o its_o subsistence_n and_o authority_n this_o have_v be_v indeed_o to_o the_o purpose_n but_o not_o the_o least_o word_n tend_v that_o way_n can_v be_v draw_v out_o of_o any_o principle_n of_o i_o for_o i_o very_o believe_v that_o the_o church_n be_v a_o society_n institute_v by_o christ_n himself_o and_o invest_v with_o authority_n necessary_a for_o its_o government_n and_o preservation_n but_o though_o i_o can_v deny_v such_o a_o authority_n i_o may_v render_v it_o whole_o useless_a i_o can_v conceive_v any_o such_o malignant_a influence_n in_o any_o principle_n of_o i_o but_o if_o there_o be_v it_o must_v be_v from_o one_o of_o these_o thing_n 1._o either_o because_o i_o deny_v infallibility_n in_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n or_o 2._o because_o i_o say_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v plain_a in_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n or_o 3_o because_o i_o deny_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n or_o 4._o because_o i_o be_o not_o for_o such_o a_o effectual_a way_n of_o suppress_v sect_n and_o heresy_n as_o be_v in_o use_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o i_o hope_v to_o make_v it_o appear_v that_o none_o of_o these_o do_v in_o the_o least_o tend_v to_o weaken_v or_o bring_v into_o contempt_n the_o church_n of_o engl●nds_n authority_n nor_o the_o just_a authority_n of_o any_o church_n in_o the_o world_n 1._o not_o the_o denial_n of_o infallibility_n this_o n._n o._n seem_v to_o suppose_v to_o be_v the_o very_a faux_n in_o the_o gunpowder_n plot_n the_o instrument_n of_o set_v all_o on_o fire_n but_o be_v there_o any_o thing_n peculiar_a to_o my_o principle_n herein_o have_v not_o all_o who_o have_v write_v against_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n oppose_v the_o pretence_n of_o infallibility_n how_o then_o come_v my_o principle_n to_o be_v of_o so_o mischievous_a a_o nature_n above_o other_o but_o i_o pray_v sir_n be_v authority_n and_o infallibility_n all_o one_o in_o your_o account_n we_o suppose_v that_o magistrate_n and_o parent_n and_o master_n have_v all_o of_o they_o a_o unquestionable_a authority_n but_o i_o never_o hear_v yet_o of_o any_o man_n that_o say_v they_o wre_v infallible_a or_o that_o there_o be_v no_o ground_n to_o obey_v they_o if_o they_o be_v not_o why_o may_v we_o not_o then_o allow_v any_o authority_n belong_v to_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o think_v it_o possible_a for_o they_o to_o be_v deceive_v be_v this_o a_o sufficient_a reason_n for_o any_o man_n to_o cast_v off_o his_o subjection_n to_o his_o prince_n because_o it_o be_v possible_a he_o may_v require_v something_o unlawful_a or_o to_o disobey_v his_o parent_n because_o they_o do_v not_o sit_v in_o a_o infallible_a chair_n or_o to_o slight_v his_o master_n because_o he_o be_v not_o pope_n these_o be_v strange_a way_n of_o argue_v about_o matter_n of_o religion_n which_o be_v ridiculous_a in_o any_o other_o case_n if_o the_o possibility_n of_o be_v deceive_v destroy_v no_o other_o authority_n in_o the_o world_n why_o shall_v it_o do_v that_o of_o the_o church_n the_o magistrate_n do_v not_o lose_v his_o authority_n though_o we_o say_v we_o be_v to_o obey_v god_n rather_o than_o man_n and_o consequent_o to_o examine_v whether_o the_o law_n of_o man_n be_v not_o repugnant_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n which_o imply_v that_o he_o may_v require_v what_o it_o be_v our_o duty_n not_o to_o do_v the_o authority_n of_o parent_n be_v not_o destroy_v because_o in_o some_o case_n we_o be_v bind_v to_o disobey_v they_o when_o they_o command_v man_n to_o destroy_v or_o rise_v up_o in_o arm_n against_o their_o sovereign_n how_o come_v it_o then_o to_o pass_v that_o all_o church-authority_n be_v immediate_o go_v if_o we_o do_v but_o suppose_v a_o possibility_n of_o error_n in_o those_o which_o have_v it_o but_o it_o may_v be_v say_v it_o be_v their_o office_n to_o be_v guide_n and_o if_o we_o do_v not_o follow_v they_o absolute_o we_o renounce_v they_o from_o be_v our_o guide_n to_o which_o i_o answer_v there_o be_v two_o sort_n of_o person_n that_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o guide_n the_o blind_a and_o the_o ignorant_a the_o blind_a must_v follow_v their_o guide_n because_o of_o a_o incapacity_n of_o see_v their_o way_n the_o ignorant_a for_o want_v of_o instruction_n yet_o neither_o of_o these_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v their_o guide_n infallible_a and_o to_o follow_v they_o at_o all_o adventure_n for_o even_o the_o blind_a by_o their_o own_o sad_a experience_n of_o frequent_a fall_n into_o ditch_n or_o knock_v their_o head_n against_o post_n may_v have_v reason_n to_o question_n if_o not_o the_o skill_n yet_o the_o sincerity_n of_o their_o guide_n and_o though_o they_o must_v have_v some_o may_v seek_v new_a one_o the_o ignorant_a follow_v
their_o guide_n only_o upon_o the_o opinion_n of_o their_o skill_n and_o integrity_n and_o when_o they_o see_v reason_n to_o question_v these_o they_o know_v of_o no_o obligation_n to_o follow_v their_o conduct_n over_o rock_n and_o precipice_n if_o they_o be_v so_o careless_a of_o their_o own_o welfare_n other_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o follow_v they_o therein_o but_o we_o be_v not_o to_o presume_v person_n so_o whole_o ignorant_a but_o they_o have_v some_o general_a rule_n by_o which_o to_o judge_n of_o the_o skill_n and_o fidelity_n of_o their_o guide_n if_o a_o person_n commit_v himself_o to_o the_o care_n of_o a_o pilot_n to_o carry_v he_o to_o constantinople_n because_o of_o his_o ignorance_n of_o the_o sea_n shall_v this_o man_n still_o rely_v upon_o his_o authority_n if_o he_o carry_v he_o to_o find_v out_o the_o north_n west_n passage_n no_o though_o he_o may_v not_o know_v the_o particular_a coast_n so_o well_o yet_o he_o know_v the_o east_n and_o west_n the_o north_n and_o south_n from_o each_o other_o if_o a_o stranger_n shall_v take_v a_o guide_n to_o conduct_v he_o from_o london_n to_o york_n although_o he_o may_v not_o think_v fit_a to_o dispute_v with_o he_o at_o every_o doubtful_a turn_n yet_o be_v he_o bind_v to_o follow_v he_o when_o he_o travel_v all_o day_n with_o the_o sun_n in_o his_o face_n for_o although_o he_o do_v not_o know_v the_o direct_a road_n yet_o he_o know_v that_o he_o be_v to_o go_v northward_o the_o meaning_n of_o all_o this_o be_v that_o the_o supposition_n of_o guide_n in_o religion_n do_v depend_v upon_o some_o common_a principle_n of_o religion_n that_o be_v or_o may_v be_v know_v to_o all_o and_o some_o precept_n so_o plain_a that_o every_o christian_n without_o any_o help_n may_v know_v they_o to_o be_v his_o duty_n within_o the_o compass_n of_o these_o plain_a and_o know_v duty_n lie_v the_o capacity_n of_o person_n judge_v of_o their_o guide_n if_o they_o carry_v they_o out_o of_o this_o beat_a way_n they_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o rely_v upon_o they_o in_o other_o thing_n if_o they_o keep_v themselves_o careful_o within_o those_o bound_n and_o show_v great_a integrity_n therein_o then_o in_o doubtful_a and_o obscure_a thing_n they_o may_v with_o more_o safety_n rely_v upon_o they_o but_o if_o they_o tell_v they_o they_o must_v put_v out_o their_o eye_n to_o follow_v they_o the_o better_a or_o if_o they_o kind_o allow_v they_o to_o keep_v their_o eye_n in_o their_o head_n yet_o they_o must_v believe_v they_o against_o their_o eyesight_n if_o they_o persuade_v they_o to_o break_v plain_a command_n of_o god_n and_o to_o alter_v the_o institution_n of_o christ_n what_o reason_n can_v there_o be_v that_o any_o shall_v commit_v themselves_o to_o the_o absolute_a conduct_n of_o such_o unfaithful_a guide_n and_o this_o be_v not_o to_o destroy_v all_o authority_n of_o faithful_a guide_n for_o they_o may_v be_v of_o great_a use_n for_o the_o direction_n of_o unskilful_a person_n in_o matter_n that_o be_v doubtful_a and_o require_v skill_n to_o resolve_v they_o but_o it_o be_v only_o to_o suppose_v that_o their_o authority_n be_v not_o absolute_a nor_o their_o direction_n infallible_a but_o if_o we_o take_v away_o this_o infallible_a direction_n from_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n what_o authority_n be_v there_o leave_v they_o as_o much_o as_o ever_o god_n give_v they_o and_o if_o they_o will_v not_o be_v content_v with_o that_o we_o can_v help_v it_o and_o that_o it_o may_v appear_v how_o vain_a and_o frivolous_a these_o exception_n be_v i_o shall_v now_o show_v what_o real_a authority_n be_v still_o leave_v in_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n though_o infallibility_n be_v take_v away_o and_o that_o lie_v in_o three_o thing_n 1._o a_o authority_n of_o inflict_a censure_n upon_o offender_n which_o be_v common_o call_v the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n or_o of_o receive_v into_o and_o exclude_v out_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n this_o the_o church_n be_v invest_v with_o by_o christ_n himself_o and_o be_v the_o necessary_a consequence_n of_o the_o be_v and_o institution_n of_o a_o christian_a society_n which_o can_v be_v preserve_v in_o its_o purity_n and_o peace_n without_o it_o which_o authority_n belong_v to_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n and_o however_o the_o church_n in_o some_o respect_n be_v incorporate_v with_o the_o commonwealth_n in_o a_o christian_a state_n yet_o its_o fundamental_a right_n remain_v distinct_a from_o it_o of_o which_o this_o be_v one_o of_o the_o chief_a to_o receive_v into_o and_o exclude_v out_o of_o the_o church_n such_o person_n which_o according_a to_o the_o law_n of_o a_o christian_a society_n be_v fit_a to_o be_v take_v in_o or_o shut_v out_o 2._o a_o authority_n of_o make_v rule_n and_o canon_n about_o matter_n of_o order_n and_o decency_n in_o the_o church_n not_o mere_o in_o the_o necessary_a circumstance_n of_o time_n and_o place_n and_o such_o thing_n the_o contrary_a to_o which_o imply_v a_o natural_a indecency_n but_o in_o continue_v and_o establish_v those_o ancient_a rite_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n which_o be_v practise_v in_o the_o early_a time_n of_o christianity_n and_o be_v in_o themselves_o of_o a_o indifferent_a nature_n which_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n have_v be_v not_o only_o assert_v in_o the_o article_n of_o our_o church_n but_o strenuous_o defend_v against_o the_o trifle_a objection_n of_o her_o enemy_n 20._o from_o scripture_n antiquity_n and_o reason_n and_o i_o free_o grant_v not_o only_o that_o such_o a_o authority_n be_v in_o itself_o reasonable_a and_o just_a but_o that_o in_o such_o matter_n require_v by_o a_o lawful_a authority_n such_o as_o that_o of_o our_o church_n be_v there_o be_v a_o advantage_n on_o the_o side_n of_o authority_n against_o a_o scrupulous_a conscience_n which_o ought_v to_o over-rule_v the_o practice_n of_o such_o who_o be_v the_o member_n of_o that_o church_n 3._o a_o authority_n of_o propose_v matter_n of_o faith_n and_o direct_a man_n in_o religion_n which_o be_v the_o proper_a authority_n of_o teacher_n and_o guide_n and_o instructer_n of_o other_o which_o may_v be_v do_v several_a way_n as_o by_o particular_a instruction_n of_o doubtful_a person_n who_o be_v bind_v to_o make_v use_n of_o the_o best_a help_n they_o can_v among_o which_o that_o of_o their_o guide_n be_v the_o most_o ready_a and_o useful_a and_o who_o be_v oblige_v to_o take_v care_n of_o their_o soul_n and_o therefore_o to_o give_v the_o most_o faithful_a advice_n and_o counsel_n to_o they_o beside_o this_o there_o be_v a_o public_a way_n of_o instruct_v by_o discourse_n ground_v upon_o scripture_n to_o particular_a congregation_n assemble_v together_o for_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n in_o place_n set_v apart_o for_o that_o end_n and_o therefore_o call_v church_n and_o those_o who_o be_v due_o appoint_v for_o this_o work_n and_o ordain_v by_o those_o who_o office_n be_v to_o ordain_v viz._n the_o bishop_n have_v a_o authority_n to_o declare_v what_o the_o mind_n and_o will_n of_o god_n be_v contain_v in_o scripture_n in_o order_n to_o the_o salvation_n and_o edification_n of_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n but_o beside_o this_o we_o may_v consider_v the_o bishop_n and_o representative_a clergy_n of_o a_o church_n as_o meet_v together_o for_o reform_v any_o abuse_n creep_v into_o the_o practice_n of_o religion_n or_o error_n in_o doctrine_n and_o in_o this_o case_n we_o assert_v that_o such_o a_o synod_n or_o convocation_n have_v the_o power_n and_o authority_n within_o itself_o especial_o have_v all_o the_o ancient_a right_n of_o a_o patriarchal_a church_n when_o a_o more_o general_a consent_n can_v be_v obtain_v to_o publish_v and_o declare_v what_o those_o error_n &_o abuse_n be_v &_o to_o do_v as_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lie_v to_o reform_v they_o viz._n by_o require_v a_o consent_n to_o such_o proposition_n as_o be_v agree_v upon_o for_o that_o end_n of_o those_o who_o be_v to_o enjoy_v the_o public_a office_n of_o teach_v and_o instruct_v other_o not_o to_o the_o end_n that_o all_o those_o proposition_n shall_v be_v believe_v as_o article_n of_o faith_n but_o because_o no_o reformation_n can_v be_v effect_v if_o person_n may_v be_v allow_v to_o preach_v and_o officiate_v in_o the_o church_n in_o a_o way_n contrary_a to_o the_o design_n of_o such_o a_o reformation_n and_o this_o be_v now_o that_o authority_n we_o attribute_v to_o the_o governor_n of_o our_o church_n although_o we_o allow_v no_o infallibility_n to_o they_o and_o herein_o we_o proceed_v in_o a_o due_a mean_a between_o the_o extreme_n of_o rob_v the_o church_n of_o all_o authority_n of_o one_o side_n and_o advance_v it_o to_o infallibility_n on_o the_o other_o but_o we_o can_v help_v the_o weakness_n of_o those_o man_n understanding_n who_o can_v apprehend_v that_o any_o such_o thing_n as_o authority_n
l._n 8._o c._n 4._o n._n 27._o la_fw-fr morale_n the_o jesuit_n ●●v_n 2._o ch_z 2._o ●_o 253._o layman_n theol._n moral_a l._n 5._o tract_n 6._o c._n 2._o sect_n 2._o tolet._n sum_n cas._n l._n 3._o c_o 4._o morinus_n de_fw-fr poenit._n l._n 8._o c._n 4._o n._n 1._o lugo_n de_fw-fr poenit._n disp_n 5._o sect_n 9_o n._n 130_o 135._o o._n n._n p._n 45._o lugo_n disp_n 7._o sect_n 11._o n._n 201._o sect._n 13._o n._n 263._o greg._n de_fw-fr valent._n tom._n 4._o disp_n 7._o q._n 8._o pua●_n 4._o sect_n secundo_fw-la potest_fw-la morin_n de_fw-fr poenit_fw-la l._n 8._o c._n 4._o n._n 15._o id._n ib._n n._n 26._o sacramentorum_fw-la evangelicorum_n supra_fw-la legaliaa_o praestantiam_fw-la &_o praerogativam_fw-la in_o hoc_fw-la potissimum_fw-la fulgere_fw-la quod_fw-la evangelica_n gravissimo_fw-la contritionis_fw-la &_o dilectionis_fw-la dei_fw-la jugo_fw-la nos_fw-la liberaverint_fw-la morin_n de_fw-fr poenit._n l._n 8._o c._n 4._o n._n 26._o index_n exp●rg_n alex._n 7._o n._n 87._o 88_o ribadin_n 〈…〉_z l._n 5._o c._n ●_o p._n 38._o p._n 39_o p._n 50._o p._n 40._o p._n 21._o p._n 13._o sanctissi●●●_n domini_fw-la n._n d._n innocenti●_n divina_fw-la providentia_fw-la pap●_n 10._o declaratio_fw-la nullitatis_fw-la articulorum_fw-la nuperae_fw-la pacis_fw-la germaniae_fw-la religioni_fw-la catholicae_fw-la sedi_fw-la apostolicae_fw-la ecclesiis_fw-la aliisque_fw-la l●●is_fw-la piis_fw-la ac_fw-la personis_fw-la &_o juribus_fw-la ecclesiasticis_fw-la quomodo_fw-la libet_fw-la praejudicialium_fw-la romae_fw-la ex_fw-la typographiâ_fw-la reverend_a can●●●_n apostolicae_fw-la a._n d._n 1651._o p._n 312._o book_n of_o hom._n second_o tom_n p._n 46._o p._n 214._o p._n 19●_n p._n 30._o appeal_n p._n 263._o answer_v to_o the_o gag_n p._n 319._o p._n 110._o council_n trident_n sess_v 7._o can_n 9_o sess_v 23._o can_n 4._o v._o vasquez_n in_o 3._o p._n thom._n disp_n 137._o c._n 3._o n._n 20._o vasquez_n in_o 3._o p_o th._n disp_n 243._o c._n 1._o est._n in_o sente_v l._n 4._o disti_fw-la 25._o sect_n 3._o aug._n ●l_o 2._o c._n epist._n pa●●ca_n c._n 13._o 17._o c._n donat._n l_o 1._o c._n 1._o l._n 3_o c._n 1●_n aug._n e●ist_o 50._o epist._n 162._o c._n c●ss_n l._n 2._o c._n 11._o 12._o co●ex_fw-la ca●_n eccles._n amic_n c._n 63._o apud_fw-la ba●samon_n et_fw-la zonar_n ●_o 71._o hallier_n de_fw-fr ordie_a sacris_fw-la p._n 2._o sect._n 4._o c._n 5._o ss_z 1._o n._n 4._o p._n 2._o sect_n 3._o c._n 2._o sect_n 5._o 6_o 7._o sect._n 4._o c._n 5._o s●ct_n 1._o to._n aquin._n suppl_n q._n 38._o art_n 2._o 〈…〉_z l._n 4._o ●●ist_n 25._o q._n 2._o mori●_n d●_n sacris_fw-la ordi●at_fw-la pa●_n 3._o exercit_fw-la 5._o c._n 1._o n._n 12_o exer●it_fw-la 5._o c._n 8._o n._n 7._o extra●_fw-la de_fw-fr temp_n 〈◊〉_d c._n quod_fw-la trasl_n morin_n de_fw-fr sacris_fw-la ordinat_fw-la part_n 1._o c._n 3._o 4._o 5._o leo_fw-la allatius_n de_fw-la aetat_fw-la et_fw-la inte●st_fw-la in_o collat_n ordin_n p._n 5._o 14._o isaaac_n habert_n pontifical_a graec._n in_o praef_n morin_n de_fw-fr sacris_fw-la ordin_n p._n 1._o c._n 4._o §._o 1●_n of_o the_o nature_n of_o these_o answer_n §._o 2._o of_o their_o common_a way_n of_o answer_v our_o book_n §._o 3._o of_o their_o calumny_n against_o i_o mat._n 26._o 65._o 1_o j●h_n 4._o 1._o §._o 4._o expose_v fanaticism_n no_o disservice_n to_o christianity_n dr._n 〈◊〉_d against_o dr._n stilling●●●t_n p._n 11._o m●●●h_o ca●_n loc_n t●col_n l._n 11._o p._n 534._o lud._n viu._n a●trad_a 〈◊〉_d l._n 5._o dr._n 〈◊〉_d princip_n con●id_fw-la 〈◊〉_d §._o 1._o the_o insufficiency_n of_o his_o way_n of_o answer_v p._n 14._o st._n against_o st._n p._n 14._o §._o 2._o no_o contratradiction_n about_o the_o charge_n of_o idolatry_n rational_a account_n p._n 596_o 606._o §._o 2._o the_o sophistical_a cavil_n in_o this_o argument_n tit._n 1._o 16._o §._o 3._o a_o distinct_a answer_n to_o his_o proposition_n §._o 4._o in_o what_o sense_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v own_v by_o we_o as_o a_o true_a church_n rational_a account_n p._n 47._o §._o 5._o his_o appendix_n consider_v dr._n st._n against_o dr._n st._n p._n 21._o roman_a idolatry_n p._n 55._o 2._o edi●_n isa._n 40_o 19_o 22._o deut._n 4._o 15_o 16._o 〈◊〉_d 20._o §_o 6._o the_o second_o contradiction_n examine_v 〈…〉_z p._n 293._o p._n 295._o arch_a b._n la●ds_o conference_n p._n 280._o p._n 282._o p._n 285._o p._n 299._o rational_a account_n p._n 622._o st._n against_o st._n p._n 7._o p._n 8._o §._o 7._o the_o charge_n of_o fanaticism_n de●ended_v p._n 8._o fanaticism_n of_o rom._n church_n s._n 16._o p._n 299._o 2._o ●d_a st._n against_o st._n p._n 9_o 1_o king_n 19_o 18._o rom._n 11._o 3._o §._o 8._o no_o contradiction_n in_o the_o charge_n 〈◊〉_d division_n rational_a 〈◊〉_d p._n 56._o divis._n of_o the_o rom._n church_n s._n 15._o ●_o 397._o 2._o ed._n §._o 9_o the_o conclusion_n p._n 14._o p._n 14._o §._o 1._o the_o occasion_n of_o annex_v the_o principle_n p._n 483._o ●_o 2._o ed._n protestant_n without_o principle_n chap._n 1._o p._n 17._o p._n 18._o p._n 19_o p._n 20._o p._n 21._o p._n 22._o p._n 23._o p._n 24._o p._n 25._o p._n 42_o 43._o §._o 2_o or_o the_o notion_n of_o infallibility_n §._o 3._o n._n o●_n concession_n prop._n 2._o prop._n 3._o prop._n 4._o prop._n 10._o p._n 22._o s._n 15._o p._n 52._o p._n 54._o p._n 56._o p._n 55._o pro●_n 27._o p._n 67._o p._n 94._o ●rot_n without_o princip_n chap._n 6._o guide_v in_o controu._n disc_fw-la 5._o chap._n 10._o s._n 134._o sect._n 135._o §_o 4._o n._n oh_o principle_n lay_v down_o p._n 1●_n §._o 5._o n._n oh_o exception_n answer_v prop._n 13._o p._n 13._o joh._n 20_o 31._o p._n 13._o p._n 14._o luke_n 10._o 31_o 32._o mat._n 25._o 29._o p._n 14._o field_n of_o the_o church_n l_o 4._o ch_n 5._o p._n 350._o ch._n 2_o ch._n 5._o p._n 15._o psal._n 25._o 9_o james_n 1._o 5._o luke_n 11._o 13._o john_n 7._o 17._o §._o 6._o n._n oh_o proof_n of_o infallibility_n examine_v §_o 7._o of_o the_o argument_n from_o scripture_n for_o infallibility_n 〈◊〉_d 25._o 26._o 〈◊〉_d 17._o 10._o 11_o 12._o 〈…〉_z ration_n account_n p._n 1._o ch_n 8._o sect._n 2._o p._n 239._o prop._n 16_o p._n 27._o p._n 28_o 29._o 1_o cor._n 14._o 22._o heb._n 2._o 4._o p._n 29._o p_o 30._o prop._n 17._o p._n 37._o §._o 8._o of_o the_o argument_n from_o tradition_n for_o infallibility_n p._n 38_o 39_o b●ll_n de_fw-fr council_n l._n 2._o c._n 10._o field_n of_o the_o church_n l._n 4_o c_o 4._o rat._n account_n part_n 3._o ch_n 1._o sect._n 4._o p._n 510._o rat._n account_v p._n 1._o ch_n 4._o p._n 101_o p_o 43._o p._n 44._o §_o 9_o of_o the_o argument_n for_o infallibility_n from_o parity_n of_o reason_n prop._n 13._o §_o 10._o of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n john_n 5._o 36_o 9_o 1_o cor._n 10._o 15_o 1_o thess._n 5._o 21._o act_n 7_o 11._o 1_o john_n 4._o ●_o gal._n 1._o 8._o judas_n v._n 4._o mat._n 24._o 4_o 5._o 23_o 24._o acts._n 20._o 29_o 30._o 1_o t●m_n 4._o 1_o 2_o thess._n 2._o 3._o 2_o tim._n 4._o 3_o 4._o 2_o tress_n 2._o 9_o ●0_n matt._n 15._o 14._o 〈◊〉_d 1._o 8._o ●_o cor._n 11._o 1._o 2_o cor._n 1._o 14._o 〈…〉_z ba●o●_n a._n d._n 546._o 547_o 55●_n petav_n dogmat_fw-la theolog._n tom._n 4._o l_o 1._o c._n 18_o petr._n de_fw-fr marca_n dis●rt_fw-la de_fw-fr vigilii_fw-la decr●to_fw-la bell._n de_fw-fr rom._n pon●it_fw-la l._n 4._o c._n 3._o b●lla●m_fw-la de_fw-fr council_n auctor_fw-la 2._o c._n 12._o council_n constat_fw-la 3._o act._n 13._o can._n lo●_n theol._n l._n 6._o c._n 8._o francise_n toa●●ens_fw-la de_fw-fr 6._o 7._o 8._o synod_n flor._n a._n d._n 1551._o p._n 11._o 12._o p._n 14._o p._n 24._o 〈◊〉_d allocutio_fw-la 3._o hadriani_n 2._o add_v co●c_n ro._n tom_n 8._o conc._n gen._n ●d_a lu●_n par._n 1671._o p._n 1●_n 91._o baron_fw-fr a._n d._n 681._o n._n 29._o francis_n combesis_n historia_n h●res_v monotheli●●r_n c._n 2._o alex_n 7._o index_n expu●g●tor_n p._n 277._o bellarm._n de_fw-fr rom._n pontifice_fw-la l._n 4._o c._n 11._o petav_n dogmat_fw-la theol._n l._n 1._o c._n 21._o s._n 11_o bal●zius_n de_fw-fr vi_fw-la â_fw-la petri_n marcae_fw-la p._n 28._o 29._o petau._n ib._n ●ect_n 13._o combesis_n c._n 2._o sect_n 3._o tab●lae_fw-la su●●rag_n p._n 130._o jacob_n de_fw-fr vitriaco_fw-it hist._n orient_a cap._n 77._o bellonii_fw-la obser_n l._n 1._o c._n 35._o article_n 21._o articl_n 3._o council_n lateran_n a._n d._n 15_o 16._o s●ct_n 11._o §._o 11._o of_o the_o s●nse_n of_o scripture_n p._n 37._o p._n 6._o 14._o p._n 47._o ephes._n 4._o 11_o 13_o 14._o 2_o pet._n 3._o 16._o p._n 67._o 2_o pet_n 3._o 17_o 18._o §_o 12._o of_o a_o judge_n of_o controversy_n §13_n the_o way_n use_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n f●r_o find_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n 〈…〉_z ●6_n sect_n 2._o 3._o 〈…〉_z 〈…〉_z c._n 29._o l._n 3._o c._n 11._o